Selected quad for the lemma: heaven_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
heaven_n jesus_n lord_n see_v 7,565 5 3.6443 3 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A73031 Certain godly and learned sermons, preached by that worthy seruant of Christ M. Ed. Philips in S. Sauiors in Southwarke: vpon the whole foure first chapters of Matthew, Luc. 11. vers. 24. 25. 26. Rom. 8. the whole, 1. Thess. 5. 19. Tit. 2. 11. 12. Iames 2. from the 20. to the 26. and 1. Ioh. 3. 9. 10. And were taken by the pen of H. Yeluerton of Grayes Inne Gentleman Philips, Edward.; Yelverton, Henry, Sir, 1566-1629. 1607 (1607) STC 19854; ESTC S114640 484,245 625

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o journey_n end_n set_v down_o by_o five_o circumstance_n first_o that_o they_o go_v when_o they_o be_v resolve_v second_o that_o the_o star_n appear_v again_o and_o go_v before_o they_o three_o that_o it_o stand_v upon_o the_o particular_a place_n where_o the_o babe_n lie_v four_o their_o exceed_a joy_n five_o how_o come_v thither_o they_o find_v the_o babe_n in_o a_o base_a place_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o discourage_v but_o reverence_v he_o and_o give_v he_o gift_n for_o the_o first_o it_o be_v show_v that_o they_o go_v alone_o not_o one_o with_o they_o though_o this_o be_v the_o king_n special_o bear_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o jew_n wherein_o we_o may_v admire_v their_o ingratitude_n and_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o scribe_n that_o point_v the_o way_n to_o other_o and_o yet_o vouchsafe_v not_o themselves_o to_o go_v one_o foot_n to_o inquire_v after_o christ_n thus_o may_v preacher_n be_v as_o mercuriale_n statui_fw-la set_v up_o a●_n director_n of_o other_o show_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o yet_o go_v themselves_o to_o hell_n perhaps_o they_o fear_v the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o king_n that_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v carry_v with_o a_o affection_n of_o see_v he_o it_o may_v have_v cost_v they_o their_o life_n or_o at_o least_o their_o honour_n though_o it_o be_v so_o yet_o do_v it_o not_o excuse_v their_o ungodliness_n to_o prefer_v the_o fear_n of_o a_o king_n that_o can_v but_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o touch_v the_o good_n 8.36_o mark_n 8.36_o before_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o the_o heaven_n that_o can_v destroy_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o though_o the_o disciple_n and_o apostle_n act._n 4.18_o be_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v teach_v no_o more_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n yet_o if_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o they_o they_o may_v not_o but_o speak_v vers_fw-la 20._o the_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v and_o though_o micaia●_n the_o prophet_n 1._o king_n 22.13_o do_v know_v what_o message_n will_v please_v the_o king_n yet_o though_o he_o be_v smite_v on_o the_o cheek_n and_o cast_v into_o prison_n he_o must_v deliver_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v gal._n 1.10_o if_o in_o these_o thing_n i_o shall_v please_v me●_n i_o be_v not_o the_o servant_n of_o christ._n in_o that_o none_o of_o the_o people_n accompany_v these_o wiseman_n observe_v their_o dulness_n and_o atheism_n that_o they_o all_o stay_n at_o home_n and_o yet_o they_o keep_v a_o outward_a show_n and_o devotion_n in_o serve_v god_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n which_o unless_o they_o know_v that_o they_o praefigure_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n what_o make_v they_o of_o their_o temple_n but_o a_o butcher_n shambles_n yet_o by_o their_o idleness_n that_o they_o will_v not_o step_v one_o foot_n to_o see_v he_o be_v perceive_v that_o of_o the_o messiah_n spiritual_o they_o know_v nothing_o which_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v fear_v of_o we_o in_o these_o day_n that_o we_o only_o rest_v ourselves_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o that_o it_o have_v bring_v we_o peace_n which_o peace_n have_v purchase_v for_o we_o profit_n and_o promotion_n but_o if_o the_o state_n may_v stand_v in_o quiet_a though_o christ_n be_v banish_v from_o we_o or_o if_o we_o may_v gain_v more_o by_o diana_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 19.24_o then_o by_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n it_o be_v to_o be_v doubt_v christ_n may_v lodge_v long_o enough_o at_o bethlem_n before_o we_o will_v go_v to_o visit_v he_o further_o observe_v if_o these_o wiseman_n have_v not_o leave_v herod_n to_o his_o canvas_v of_o the_o matter_n the_o scribe_n to_o their_o speculation_n the_o people_n to_o their_o trade_n if_o they_o have_v respect_v the_o example_n of_o the_o mighty_a or_o of_o the_o learned_a or_o consider_v the_o danger_n that_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o treason_n if_o it_o have_v so_o be_v take_v they_o have_v not_o have_v this_o glory_n and_o honour_n to_o have_v see_v the_o messiah_n but_o they_o be_v glad_a to_o go_v alone_o though_o they_o will_v be_v desirous_a to_o have_v company_n whereby_o we_o learn_v that_o to_o embrace_v religion_n and_o to_o join_v ourselves_o with_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v good_a in_o go_v if_o we_o can_v get_v company_n for_o the_o great_a blessing_n fall_v upon_o a_o multitude_n howbeit_o we_o must_v have_v this_o resolution_n to_o go_v what_o danger_n soever_o may_v befall_v and_o not_o to_o stay_v until_o other_o go_v for_o thou_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n if_o thou_o stay_v till_o all_o jerusalem_n do_v go_v with_o thou_o to_o bethlem_n these_o wiseman_n may_v have_v say_v with_o themselves_o wherefore_o shall_v we_o go_v see_v he_o since_o his_o own_o people_n will_v not_o as_o judas_n ask_v christ_n 22_o joh._n ●_o 22_o why_o do_v thou_o show_v thyself_o to_o we_o and_o not_o to_o the_o world_n but_o they_o take_v no_o occasion_n of_o stay_n but_o be_v resolute_a to_o go_v alone_o now_o if_o these_o heathen_a man_n be_v so_o earnest_a as_o to_o admit_v of_o nothing_o which_o may_v hinder_v they_o from_o behold_v christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o be_v eager_a to_o hear_v christ_n in_o his_o word_n and_o to_o see_v he_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o queen_n of_o saba_n shall_v rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o we_o that_o come_v so_o far_o to_o hear_v the_o wisdom_n of_o solomon_n 1._o king_n 10.1_o and_o yet_o as_o christ_n speak_v mat._n 12.42_o a_o great_a than_o solomon_n be_v here_o yet_o be_v we_o negligent_a in_o attend_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n now_o for_o the_o second_o circumstance_n namely_o that_o the_o star_n go_v before_o they_o consider_v the_o wonderful_a wisdom_n of_o god_n that_o he_o do_v so_o qualify_v and_o moderate_v the_o trial_n and_o affliction_n of_o his_o servant_n that_o even_o to_o the_o great_a temptation_n if_o they_o mistrust_v not_o he_o give_v a_o most_o bless_a issue_n for_o it_o may_v have_v strike_v these_o man_n with_o a_o strange_a astonishment_n and_o drive_v they_o into_o great_a perplexity_n that_o they_o be_v of_o special_a reputation_n in_o their_o country_n and_o come_v this_o tedious_a journey_n and_o have_v such_o cold_a entertainment_n both_o in_o the_o king_n court_n and_o of_o the_o mean_a people_n and_o have_v lose_v their_o direction_n the_o star_n be_v vanish_v these_o thing_n may_v great_o have_v dismay_v they_o not_o to_o have_v go_v any_o further_a yet_o they_o proceed_v forward_o in_o their_o obedience_n the_o light_n that_o be_v quench_v be_v again_o of_o the_o lord_n reviue_v and_o with_o this_o they_o be_v comfort_v great_o see_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o priest_n concur_v with_o the_o dumb_a message_n of_o the_o star_n wherein_o also_o mark_n that_o the_o star_n guide_v they_o to_o the_o particular_a place_n where_o the_o babe_n lie_v for_o if_o they_o have_v come_v to_o bethlem_n it_o be_v likely_a none_o there_o know_v it_o christ_n his_o birth_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o dream_v of_o and_o he_o be_v a_o babe_n unregarded_a and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o he_o come_v of_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o if_o they_o have_v inquire_v of_o wicked_a man_n for_o such_o a_o thing_n they_o will_v but_o have_v scorn_v they_o or_o else_o seek_v to_o have_v entrap_v they_o if_o of_o good_a man_n they_o have_v endanger_v themselves_o by_o descry_v it_o therefore_o not_o to_o need_v any_o help_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n point_v out_o the_o place_n unto_o they_o wherein_o for_o our_o further_a instruction_n learn_v that_o god_n in_o every_o good_a purpose_n do_v go_v before_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n to_o make_v we_o willing_a 2.13_o phil._n 2.13_o as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v and_o with_o the_o same_o grace_n do_v follow_v we_o and_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o first_o work_n that_o we_o shall_v never_o wash_v our_o hand_n in_o vain_a but_o that_o as_o we_o be_v by_o his_o direction_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o seek_v after_o christ_n so_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o same_o direction_n go_v straight_o to_o bethlem_n where_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o david_n say_v psalm_n 25.12_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n shall_v know_v how_o to_o choose_v the_o right_a way_n for_o their_o rejoice_v at_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o star_n appear_v again_o it_o impli_v they_o be_v strange_o discomfort_a at_o the_o loss_n of_o it_o where_o note_n that_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v at_o any_o time_n quench_v the_o light_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o we_o or_o change_v the_o pleasure_n and_o eclipse_v the_o joy_n of_o his_o countenance_n if_o sometime_o we_o can_v apply_v to_o our_o soul_n the_o sweet_a
coronation_n for_o than_o shall_v we_o have_v not_o reed_n but_o palm_n in_o our_o hand_n to_o show_v our_o triumph_n and_o be_v crown_v not_o with_o thorn_n but_o with_o glory_n even_o the_o glory_n that_o christ_n have_v from_o the_o beginning_n now_o for_o life_n that_o can_v do_v it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o temptation_n in_o this_o life_n neither_o excessive_a pleasure_n nor_o abundant_a profit_n not_o magnificent_a state_n that_o a_o righteous_a soul_n will_v not_o forgo_v rather_o than_o forsake_v the_o righteousness_n of_o c●●●●_n or_o their_o own_o peace_n of_o conscience_n yea_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d moses_n ●●●●her_o than_o to_o lose_v the_o least_o light_n of_o the_o lord_n countenance_n we_o will_v refuse_v to_o be_v make_v glorious_a by_o our_o birth_n and_o choose_v to_o suffer_v affliction_n with_o the_o child_n of_o god_n heb._n 11.24_o and_o with_o paul_n phil._n 3.8_o to_o esteem_v all_o thing_n but_o as_o the_o excrement_n of_o a_o dog_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o security_n and_o confidence_n we_o have_v of_o the_o lord_n love_v towards_o we_o so_o as_o we_o be_v christ_n in_o our_o life_n also_o and_o though_o we_o do_v desire_v to_o see_v the_o face_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n yet_o as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v whether_o we_o be_v in_o our_o body_n at_o home_n absent_a 1.20_o phil._n 1.20_o or_o abroad_o in_o our_o separation_n our_o soul_n still_o wait_v upon_o the_o lord_n for_o for_o this_o cause_n as_o rom._n 14.8.9_o christ_n die_v that_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o die_v we_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n now_o for_o angel_n power_n or_o principality_n by_o the_o name_n themselves_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o well_o the_o good_a angel_n as_o the_o bad_a whereof_o paul_n speak_v 1._o cor._n 6.3_o know_v you_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v judge_v the_o angel_n that_o be_v the_o reprobate_a spirit_n for_o these_o be_v executioner_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v though_o not_o by_o willing_a and_o loyal_a obedience_n as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o and_o though_o both_o these_o be_v several_a have_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o same_o title_n give_v they_o as_o the_o good_a be_v call_v eph._n 1.21_o power_n and_o principality_n and_o so_o be_v the_o bad_a call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n colos_n 2.15_o where_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o spoil_v and_o to_o traduce_v principality_n &_o power_n to_o open_a shame_n and_o eph._n 6.12_o we_o must_v fight_v against_o principality_n and_o power_n yet_o in_o this_o place_n by_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v take_v the_o good_a and_o by_o power_n and_o principality_n the_o devil_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o here_o the_o apostle_n make_v a_o opposition_n between_o contrary_n and_o also_o because_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o these_o same_o word_n be_v use_v to_o express_v the_o good_a angel_n there_o be_v always_o more_o add_v to_o their_o stile_n as_o eph._n 1.20_o throne_n and_o domination_n be_v mention_v beside_o the_o other_o but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v will_v the_o angel_n that_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n attempt_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o to_o part_v god_n and_o we_o no_o it_o be_v impossible_a howsoever_o the_o apostle_n speak_v excessive_o from_o the_o exultation_n &_o joy_n of_o his_o spirit_n for_o he_o reason_n ab_fw-la impossibili_fw-la as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o angel_n which_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a and_o most_o powerful_a creature_n can_v attempt_v to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n yet_o they_o can_v not_o for_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o angel_n have_v join_v we_o to_o his_o father_n and_o therefore_o much_o less_o any_o inferior_a thing_n can_v do_v it_o after_o this_o manner_n this_o apostle_n speak_v galat._n 1.8_o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v preach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n which_o be_v impossible_a let_v he_o be_v accurse_v so_o rom._n 9.3_o paul_n wish_v himself_o accurse_v to_o redeem_v the_o jew_n and_o moses_n pray_v to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n rather_o than_o the_o israelite_n shall_v perish_v which_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v frustrate_a but_o such_o be_v the_o vehemency_n of_o their_o affection_n if_o the_o lord_n will_v be_v entreat_v at_o their_o prayer_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n here_o to_o name_n angel_n because_o they_o be_v the_o mighty_a creature_n and_o if_o they_o can_v part_v the_o lord_n and_o we_o much_o less_o can_v devil_n for_o the_o worst_a they_o can_v do_v be_v but_o to_o buffet_v we_o whereby_o our_o infirmity_n shall_v be_v heal_v and_o as_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n satan_n desire_v to_o winnow_v thou_o like_o wheat_n 22.31_o mat._n 22.31_o but_o i_o have_v pray_v that_o thy_o faith_n may_v not_o fail_v this_o also_o appear_v by_o that_o in_o the_o revelation_n 12.4_o that_o the_o red_a dragon_n can_v do_v it_o though_o with_o his_o tail_n he_o can_v draw_v star_n from_o heaven_n that_o be_v discover_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o some_o great_a professor_n for_o first_o he_o wait_v upon_o the_o woman_n as_o she_o be_v with_o child_n second_o in_o her_o delivery_n three_o when_o the_o child_n be_v bring_v forth_o to_o see_v first_o if_o he_o can_v have_v destroy_v the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o if_o not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o if_o not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o lord_n jesus_n or_o if_o not_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o faithful_a or_o if_o not_o some_o one_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o he_o be_v cast_v down_o say_v the_o text_n that_o be_v he_o be_v abase_v in_o his_o pride_n and_o seek_v to_o advance_v and_o lift_v up_o himself_o again_o to_o heaven_n by_o destroy_v the_o woman_n and_o her_o seed_n that_o be_v by_o withstand_v the_o salvation_n of_o the_o elect_a this_o dragon_n have_v especial_o two_o instrument_n first_o the_o great_a beast_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a empire_n where_o be_v a_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n write_v in_o his_o forehead_n which_o though_o it_o can_v with_o eliah_n call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n yet_o can_v it_o never_o consume_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n choose_v 1.10_o 2._o king_n 1.10_o nor_o ever_o draw_v one_o soul_n from_o christ_n the_o second_o be_v the_o roman_a hierarchy_n raise_v out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o former_a which_o though_o it_o can_v make_v the_o heaven_n brass_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o rain_v or_o the_o earth_n iron_n that_o it_o shall_v yield_v no_o fruit_n yet_o can_v it_o never_o touch_v any_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o lamb_n 5.3_o revel_v 5.3_o for_o where_o he_o seal_v none_o can_v open_v and_o where_o he_o open_v none_o can_v shut_v and_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a place_n they_o which_o be_v buy_v from_o the_o earth_n sing_v in_o great_a troop_n a_o new_a song_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o the_o other_o neither_o thing_n present_a that_o may_v be_v know_v nor_o thing_n to_o come_v which_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v doubtful_a can_v make_v any_o separation_n of_o god_n from_o we_o for_o the_o elect_n be_v sure_o the_o lord_n grace_n shall_v assist_v they_o to_o the_o end_n neither_o height_n of_o heaven_n as_o paul_n that_o be_v carry_v up_o on_o high_a do_v not_o yet_o presume_v nor_o the_o depth_n of_o hell_n 2.1_o 2._o cor._n 12.5_o jonah_n 2.1_o as_o jonas_n be_v in_o the_o belly_n of_o the_o whale_n do_v not_o yet_o despair_v but_o have_v his_o prayer_n pass_v to_o heaven_n through_o the_o fish_n mouth_n 13.15_o job._n 13.15_o &_o job_n in_o the_o patience_n &_o resolution_n of_o his_o spirit_n can_v say_v o_o lord_n though_o thou_o kill_v i_o yet_o will_v i_o love_v thou_o for_o hope_n which_o be_v the_o sure_a anchor_n of_o the_o soul_n make_v we_o to_o enter_v with_o confidence_n within_o the_o list_n of_o the_o lord_n presence_n and_o there_o stay_v we_o for_o the_o lord_n do_v know_v we_o for_o his_o own_o in_o his_o belove_a son_n hence_o learn_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o this_o place_n be_v without_o exception_n yet_o some_o say_v this_o be_v a_o special_a revelation_n paul_n have_v of_o his_o own_o salvation_n which_o be_v most_o injurious_a to_o the_o whole_a text_n for_o though_o he_o say_v i_o be_o persuade_v as_o speak_v of_o himself_o yet_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o persuasion_n he_o join_v all_o the_o faithful_a as_o that_o nothing_o can_v separate_v we_o speak_v general_o of_o all_o which_o be_v prove_v also_o by_o many_o thing_n and_o speech_n before_o as_o verse_n 23._o we_o groan_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n do_v paul_n only_o groan_v and_o verse_n 35._o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v paul_n only_o
certain_o set_v down_o but_o it_o be_v probable_a and_o likely_a that_o it_o be_v not_o till_o mary_n have_v recover_v the_o weakness_n of_o her_o childbirth_n second_o herein_o consider_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o message_n contain_v these_o four_o thing_n first_o that_o joseph_n must_v take_v the_o babe_n and_o his_o mother_n he_o do_v not_o say_v his_o wife_n for_o the_o angel_n have_v before_o satisfy_v he_o for_o that_o matter_n second_o the_o place_n whither_o he_o must_v go_v to_o egypt_n the_o worst_a of_o all_o other_o three_o the_o time_n he_o shall_v stay_v there_o set_v down_o indefinite_o till_o he_o be_v call_v away_o four_o a_o reason_n of_o this_o commandment_n express_v to_o relieve_v the_o weakness_n of_o joseph_n though_o the_o commandment_n itself_o have_v be_v sufficient_a because_o herod_n seek_v to_o destroy_v the_o child_n out_o of_o the_o first_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n learn_v that_o god_n give_v and_o allow_v no_o long_a time_n of_o peace_n and_o truce_n to_o his_o servant_n who_o he_o will_v make_v mirror_n of_o patience_n but_o he_o send_v one_o trouble_n in_o the_o neck_n of_o another_o that_o though_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v but_o as_o a_o tale_n tell_v yet_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o christian_a soul_n have_v many_o fraction_n and_o interruption_n before_o it_o can_v pass_v like_o the_o weaver_n shuttle_n through_o the_o web_n so_o as_o the_o breathe_a time_n which_o they_o have_v have_v be_v but_o to_o enable_v they_o to_o further_a strength_n for_o that_o which_o succede_v here_o be_v in_o this_o place_n set_v down_o how_o the_o lord_n mingle_v the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o gift_n bring_v to_o this_o babe_n by_o the_o man_n of_o persia_n with_o the_o bitterness_n of_o a_o immediate_a persecution_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o herod_n the_o king_n to_o teach_v joseph_n and_o in_o he_o all_o of_o we_o that_o when_o we_o have_v have_v honour_n together_o with_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n we_o may_v not_o flatter_v and_o persuade_v ourselves_o of_o the_o continuance_n of_o this_o but_o be_v arm_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o truth_n and_o to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n both_o in_o honour_n and_o dishonour_n for_o mary_n as_o she_o have_v this_o comfort_n to_o see_v the_o babe_n her_o son_n honour_v and_o worship_v of_o these_o wiseman_n so_o have_v she_o this_o sorrow_n and_o discomfort_n mix_v therewithal_o in_o the_o night_n to_o truss_v up_o her_o furniture_n and_o to_o fly_v thus_o fare_v it_o with_o her_o son_n at_o another_o time_n who_o mat._n 21.8_o come_v ride_v on_o the_o sabbath_n to_o jerusalem_n have_v acclamation_n and_o cry_n of_o the_o people_n hosanna_n to_o the_o son_n of_o david_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n yea_o have_v the_o great_a glory_n that_o ever_o happen_v to_o any_o earthly_a prince_n to_o have_v garment_n straw_v in_o the_o way_n for_o he_o to_o tread_v on_o thereby_o the_o more_o royal_o to_o entertain_v he_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o within_o five_o day_n he_o be_v exclaim_v on_o and_o tumultuous_o they_o cry_v crucify_v he_o crucify_v he_o his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o child_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o neither_o prosperity_n puff_n we_o up_o nor_o adversity_n cast_v we_o down_o know_v that_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n will_v and_o pleasure_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o interchangeable_a course_n of_o these_o thing_n as_o simeon_n prophesy_v luk._n 2.35_o that_o a_o sword_n shall_v pierce_v mary_n soul_n which_o even_o now_o be_v fulfil_v be_v command_v to_o take_v her_o heel_n to_o teach_v she_o that_o she_o shall_v not_o expect_v any_o great_a state_n in_o this_o life_n though_o she_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o the_o king_n of_o glory_n but_o that_o even_o she_o shall_v be_v fashion_v after_o her_o own_o son_n to_o come_v to_o a_o crown_n by_o the_o cross_n here_o than_o be_v condemn_v the_o daintiness_n of_o those_o professor_n that_o will_v wait_v no_o long_o at_o the_o lord_n table_n than_o they_o may_v be_v feed_v from_o his_o trencher_n and_o which_o do_v love_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o gospel_n only_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o joseph_n may_v not_o be_v discourage_v though_o he_o be_v drive_v to_o fly_v with_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n in_o his_o arm_n but_o hereby_o may_v he_o be_v secure_v of_o safety_n have_v his_o saviour_n with_o he_o and_o on_o this_o may_v we_o all_o rest_n that_o 〈◊〉_d we_o be_v drive_v to_o flight_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n our_o foot_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d lead_v we_o to_o the_o wing_n of_o christ_n where_o we_o shall_v be_v cherish_v even_o in_o egypt_n a_o place_n of_o darkness_n and_o disdain_n to_o the_o truth_n 〈◊〉_d god_n for_o the_o second_o circumstance_n which_o be_v the_o place_n wither_v they_o must_v fly_v it_o can_v be_v think_v but_o joseph_n be_v distract_v and_o weary_v with_o sundry_a cogitation_n yea_o and_o perplex_v with_o deep_a sorrow_n to_o see_v that_o this_o king_n of_o glory_n must_v be_v force_v to_o fly_v from_o the_o cruelty_n of_o herod_n and_o to_o such_o a_o place_n as_o be_v alwares_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n howbeit_o herein_o we_o may_v observe_v how_o sometime_o the_o lord_n show_v but_o a_o sparkle_n and_o portion_n of_o his_o power_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o his_o servant_n though_o at_o other_o time_n he_o open_o show_v himself_o for_o their_o protection_n in_o great_a glory_n and_o majesty_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o eliah_n 2._o king_n 1.9_o when_o the_o soldier_n come_v to_o he_o and_o scoff_v he_o say_v man_n of_o god_n come_v down_o present_o the_o arm_n of_o god_n be_v make_v naked_a and_o fire_n come_v down_o and_o consume_v they_o so_o do_v the_o lord_n deal_v with_o elisha_n 2._o king_n 6.18_o who_o have_v discover_v the_o secret_n speak_v in_o the_o king_n of_o syriahs_n chamber_n the_o king_n in_o indignation_n send_v forth_o against_o one_o man_n have_v but_o gehezi_n to_o wait_v on_o he_o and_o host_n of_o arm_a man_n to_o compass_v the_o place_n where_o he_o be_v and_o when_o they_o come_v think_v to_o have_v catch_v he_o they_o be_v smite_v with_o sudden_a blindness_n and_o elisha_n in_o a_o holy_a zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n lead_v they_o to_o a_o city_n where_o but_o for_o he_o they_o have_v be_v all_o slay_v so_o daniel_n chap._n 6.7.22_o he_o be_v put_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n seal_v with_o the_o king_n own_o signet_n as_o escape_v out_o he_o can_v not_o which_o since_o it_o be_v so_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n be_v shut_v that_o they_o can_v hurt_v he_o here_o be_v majesty_n but_o now_o jesus_n his_o own_o son_n he_o must_v fly_v and_o shall_v not_o be_v rescue_v by_o any_o immediate_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n here_o be_v a_o diverse_a dispensation_n the_o child_n in_o the_o fire_n dan._n 3.22_o though_o it_o consume_v they_o that_o cast_v they_o in_o yet_o do_v not_o their_o clothes_n so_o much_o as_o smell_v of_o it_o and_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v now_o shorten_v or_o his_o power_n abate_v that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v wrought_v as_o mighty_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o own_o son_n god_n forbid_v peter_n we_o see_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o gaol_n act._n 12.8_o but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n open_v the_o door_n and_o bid_v he_o preach_v with_o confidence_n and_o ●hen_o he_o be_v condemn_v the_o next_o day_n to_o be_v execute_v lie_v ●ound_v with_o two_o great_a chain_n the_o angel_n with_o one_o blow_n unloose_v they_o both_o bring_v he_o through_o the_o soldier_n and_o a_o iron_n gate_n fly_v open_a to_o give_v he_o passage_n so_o paul_n act._n 16.26_o he_o be_v deliver_v by_o a_o earthquake_n that_o shake_v the_o prison_n and_o the_o governor_n be_v fain_o to_o entreat_v he_o to_o go_v forth_o thus_o can_v the_o prayer_n of_o god_n servant_n obtain_v the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n to_o disarm_v the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o to_o frustrate_v the_o malice_n of_o the_o wicked_a howbeit_o on_o the_o other_o side_n how_o the_o lord_n suffer_v as_o it_o be_v his_o power_n to_o be_v blast_v under_o a_o wonderful_a kind_n of_o infirmity_n we_o have_v equal_a example_n in_o the_o scripture_n we_o see_v eliah_n 1._o king_n 19.3_o that_o before_o can_v command_v fire_n from_o heaven_n must_v now_o fly_v from_o the_o face_n of_o jezabel_n and_o be_v drive_v to_o such_o a_o exigent_n that_o he_o cry_v out_o unto_o the_o lord_n even_o to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n so_o the_o spy_n that_o come_v to_o see_v jericho_n josh_n 2.4_o and_o be_v send_v from_o joshua_n the_o lieutenant_n of_o god_n to_o take_v possession_n of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n so_o
we_o learn_v that_o prince_n think_v themselves_o abuse_v and_o that_o disparagement_n be_v do_v to_o the_o state_n royal_a if_o man_n will_v not_o be_v executioner_n of_o their_o bloody_a complot_n and_o even_o sell_v their_o soul_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o their_o design_n herod_n be_v mock_v because_o the_o wiseman_n will_v not_o relate_v the_o certainty_n of_o christ_n birth_n that_o he_o may_v murder_v he_o and_o saul_n 1._o sam._n 22.17_o think_v himself_o contemn_v because_o his_o footman_n will_v not_o slay_v the_o priest_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o have_v their_o hand_n with_o david_n second_o in_o that_o he_o term_v it_o mockery_n note_v that_o the_o wicked_a can_v father_n that_o upon_o other_o whereof_z themselves_o be_v most_o guilty_a for_o the_o wiseman_n they_o mean_v simple_o but_o that_o they_o be_v interdict_v of_o god_n to_o return_v to_o the_o court_n but_o herod_n he_o mock_v with_o the_o lord_n for_o though_o he_o know_v that_o this_o newborn_a king_n be_v to_o be_v set_v up_o and_o that_o he_o must_v reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n yet_o in_o despite_n of_o god_n he_o though_o either_o by_o policy_n to_o circumvent_v it_o or_o by_o power_n to_o withstand_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n scorn_v at_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o complain_v of_o cousinage_n when_o himself_o will_v have_v cousin_v the_o almighty_a like_o unto_o fimbria_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v dangerous_o wound_v one_o the_o next_o day_n enter_v a_o action_n against_o the_o party_n grieve_v because_o he_o have_v receive_v but_o part_n of_o his_o blade_n into_o his_o body_n and_o not_o all_o and_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a when_o pharaoh_n shall_v call_v moses_n hard_o heart_v when_o the_o wolf_n shall_v accuse_v the_o lamb_n the_o serpent_n say_v the_o dove_n be_v too_o subtle_a and_o herod_n exclaim_v upon_o the_o wise_a man_n for_o mockery_n when_o himself_o nourish_v so_o foul_a a_o vice_n against_o the_o high_a no_o doubt_v he_o be_v wroth_a but_o not_o simple_o because_o the_o wise_a man_n return_v not_o but_o for_o his_o own_o sottishness_n that_o he_o have_v not_o send_v some_o man_n with_o they_o to_o have_v see_v what_o have_v become_v of_o the_o babe_n but_o thus_o when_o prince_n make_v league_n and_o band_n themselves_o against_o the_o lord_n and_o contribute_v towards_o the_o affliction_n of_o his_o saint_n he_o insnare_v they_o in_o their_o own_o invention_n and_o infatuate_v their_o devise_n and_o destroy_v the_o counsel_n of_o achitophel_n 18.26_o psal_n 18.26_o 2._o sam._n 17.14_o for_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v with_o the_o froward_a the_o lord_n will_v deal_v froward_o for_o the_o second_o point_n which_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o this_o butchery_n we_o see_v to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o may_v have_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o babe_n among_o the_o multitude_n he_o spare_v none_o and_o the_o story_n report_n in_o this_o massacre_n be_v kill_v his_o own_o son_n whereupon_o augustus_n the_o emperor_n say_v in_o detestation_n of_o his_o cruelty_n that_o he_o have_v rather_o be_v herod_n hog_n than_o his_o heir_n by_o which_o we_o learn_v that_o the_o devil_n possess_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o tyrant_n make_v he_o execute_v any_o thing_n tend_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o state_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n abhor_v it_o as_o the_o effusion_n of_o blood_n or_o though_o they_o be_v check_v and_o amate_v by_o their_o own_o heart_n for_o herod_n know_v if_o christ_n be_v bear_v he_o must_v reign_v yet_o against_o his_o own_o conscience_n he_o endeavour_n by_o counsel_n if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o deceive_v or_o by_o cruelty_n if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o supplant_v the_o decree_n of_o god_n thus_o do_v pharaoh_n exod._n 8.4_o seek_v to_o cross_v the_o commandment_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o his_o servant_n though_o by_o many_o immediate_a testimony_n and_o wonder_n from_o heaven_n he_o see_v it_o as_o it_o be_v write_v on_o the_o wall_n that_o the_o israelite_n must_v depart_v and_o thus_o do_v saul_n seek_v the_o life_n of_o david_n though_o he_o be_v tell_v by_o samuel_n 1._o sam._n 15.28_o that_o the_o lord_n the_o strength_n of_o israel_n that_o can_v not_o lie_v have_v rend_v the_o kingdom_n from_o he_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o neighbour_n second_o observe_v hence_o that_o when_o one_o way_n succeed_v not_o to_o these_o atheist_n than_o they_o straight_o attempt_v another_o pharaoh_n at_o the_o first_o do_v but_o exact_a further_a and_o great_a labour_n of_o the_o israelite_n but_o after_o he_o deal_v with_o the_o midwife_n exod_a 1.15_o to_o kill_v they_o that_o shall_v be_v bear_v and_o after_o his_o malice_n break_v forth_o more_o fierce_o into_o a_o edict_n or_o proclamation_n vers_fw-la 22._o that_o the_o male_a bear_v shall_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o river_n so_o saul_n confess_v that_o he_o know_v the_o lord_n will_v establish_v the_o kingdom_n in_o the_o throne_n of_o david_n yet_o first_o he_o seek_v to_o ensnare_v he_o by_o his_o daughter_n 1._o sam._n 18.17_o only_o say_v he_o fight_v thou_o the_o battle_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o shall_v have_v my_o daughter_n but_o after_o his_o hypocrisy_n be_v discover_v c._n 19.1_o make_v solemn_a proclamation_n who_o have_v i_o among_o all_o my_o soldier_n that_o will_v do_v thus_o much_o for_o i_o to_o kill_v david_n so_o as_o he_o that_o can_v spare_v agag_n will_v pierce_v david_n so_o herod_n when_o he_o see_v he_o be_v prevent_v of_o his_o first_o purpose_n by_o the_o not_o return_v of_o the_o wise_a man_n he_o still_o travel_v with_o the_o same_o mischief_n and_o whereas_o before_o he_o seek_v but_o the_o life_n of_o the_o babe_n only_o now_o he_o be_v so_o enrage_a as_o he_o double_v his_o cruelty_n and_o will_v have_v the_o life_n of_o many_o innocent_a babe_n such_o a_o fire_n be_v sin_n to_o double_a and_o increase_v the_o heat_n by_o burn_a and_o the_o defer_v of_o their_o curse_a attempt_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o water_n to_o quench_v they_o be_v as_o oil_n to_o inflame_v they_o this_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o throw_v in_o fresh_a poison_n into_o our_o heart_n that_o if_o we_o be_v prevent_v in_o our_o resolution_n of_o murder_v the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o will_v be_v like_o the_o dragon_n 12.12_o reu._n 12.12_o to_o send_v forth_o whole_a flood_n of_o water_n out_o of_o our_o mouth_n to_o drown_v and_o destroy_v his_o member_n three_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o edict_n or_o proclamation_n so_o cruel_a or_o execrable_a against_o god_n saint_n which_o some_o wicked_a man_n will_v not_o execute_v at_o their_o prince_n commandment_n if_o jesabel_n will_v have_v naboth_n vineyard_n and_o can_v obtain_v it_o without_o his_o life_n 1._o king_n 21.11_o she_o shall_v have_v governor_n to_o serve_v her_o turn_n that_o will_v so_o one_o follow_v her_o curse_a counsel_n when_o no_o man_n will_v fall_v upon_o the_o priest_n at_o the_o word_n of_o saul_n 1._o sam._n 22.17_o then_o will_v doeg_n take_v the_o sword_n and_o do_v it_o and_o herod_n here_o can_v no_o soon_o mention_v a_o murder_n but_o his_o servant_n will_v execute_v it_o where_o further_o consider_v that_o if_o hell_n be_v prepare_v for_o the_o commander_n so_o be_v it_o likewise_o for_o the_o executioner_n though_o his_o act_n be_v warrant_v by_o authority_n be_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o prince_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o religion_n against_o god_n or_o may_v they_o do_v what_o they_o will_v god_n forbid_v if_o the_o prince_n shall_v command_v i_o to_o burn_v the_o bible_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o do_v it_o for_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o of_o god_n because_o she_o command_v it_o but_o because_o it_o be_v of_o god_n therefore_o ought_v she_o to_o command_v it_o cambyses_n king_n of_o persia_n inflame_v with_o incest_n consult_v with_o his_o wiseman_n whether_o he_o may_v lawful_o marry_v his_o sister_n they_o answer_v they_o find_v no_o such_o law_n to_o warrant_v it_o but_o they_o find_v another_o law_n that_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n be_v without_o all_o law_n and_o thus_o do_v prince_n counsellor_n feed_v they_o in_o their_o humour_n nod_v at_o whatsoever_o augustus_n will_v have_v do_v and_o even_o so_o miserable_a be_v these_o time_n that_o man_n do_v wait_v at_o their_o prince_n mouth_n and_o perform_v their_o decree_n not_o scan_v whether_o they_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n whereat_o prince_n shall_v level_v their_o commandment_n and_o by_o which_o subject_n shall_v square_v their_o obedience_n for_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o slay_v amnon_n 2._o sam._n 13.29_o at_o absoloms_n commandment_n neither_o shall_v rabshake_v excuse_v himself_o esay_n 36.16_o for_o rail_v on_o
the_o babe_n life_n verse_n 21_o then_o he_o rise_v up_o and_o take_v the_o babe_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o come_v into_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n verse_n 22_o but_o when_o he_o hear_v that_o archilaus_n do_v reign_v in_o juda_n in_o stand_n of_o his_o father_n herod_n he_o be_v afraid_a to_o go_v thither_o yet_o after_o he_o be_v warn_v of_o god_n in_o a_o dream_n he_o turn_v aside_o into_o the_o part_n of_o galiley_n verse_n 23_o and_o go_v and_o dwell_v in_o a_o city_n call_v nazareth_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v a_o nazarite_n now_o follow_v the_o return_n of_o jesus_n out_o of_o egypt_n after_o the_o cruelty_n execute_v by_o herod_n upon_o the_o child_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n manifest_v on_o herod_n strike_v he_o with_o death_n 〈◊〉_d which_o word_n there_o be_v four_o general_a point_n to_o be_v consider_v first_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o message_n of_o a_o angel_n unto_o joseph_n as_o the_o foster-fath_a of_o this_o babe_n whereby_o he_o be_v advertise_v to_o return_v have_v security_n give_v he_o that_o he_o need_v not_o doubt_n namely_o that_o herod_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v dead_a which_o seek_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n second_o the_o obedience_n of_o joseph_n turn_v neither_o to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a but_o as_o he_o stay_v till_o he_o be_v call_v so_o he_o stay_v not_o when_o he_o be_v call_v three_o in_o what_o fear_n joseph_n stand_v find_v suc●_n trouble_v in_o judaea_n and_o into_o what_o perturbation_n of_o mind_n he●●_n cast_v when_o he_o hear_v that_o archilaus_n reign_v know_v he_o to_o be_v cockatrice_n hatch_v out_o of_o a_o serpent_n egg_n and_o how_o the_o l●sent_a a_o angel_n to_o relieve_v he_o in_o this_o perplexity_n four_o 〈◊〉_d joseph_n mind_v no_o such_o matter_n by_o his_o turn_n into_o galilee_n th●●_n be_v a_o ancient_a oracle_n fulfil_v that_o this_o babe_n shall_v be_v call●●_n nazarit_n out_o of_o the_o first_o learn_v the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n pro●●●_n that_o he_o be_v a_o god_n of_o his_o word_n for_o in_o this_o be_v his_o first_o prom●●●_n complish_v as_o appear_v now_o by_o the_o effect_n that_o he_o wou●●_n his_o son_n out_o of_o egypt_n and_o that_o the_o same_o angel_n that_o br●●●_n the_o heavy_a tiding_n unto_o joseph_n of_o his_o flight_n from_o bethle●●_n egypt_n the_o same_o angel_n bring_v he_o this_o glad_a tiding_n of_o 〈◊〉_d turn_n from_o thence_o into_o the_o land_n of_o israel_n and_o thus_o m●●●_n consider_v of_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n as_o of_o his_o covenant_n noah_n genes_n 9.11_o that_o the_o world_n shall_v no_o more_o be_v dro●●_n his_o promise_n to_o israel_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v his_o choose_a for_o ho●_n ever_o the_o lord_n withdraw_v his_o favour_n from_o his_o saint_n for_o a●●_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o he_o will_v release_v they_o and_o in_o compassion_n will_v 〈◊〉_d upon_o their_o affliction_n and_o well_o may_v the_o mountain_n fall_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n change_n but_o god_n promise_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d fail_v 5.24_o 1._o thes_n 5.24_o for_o as_o david_n say_v psalm_n 32._o though_o their_o relation_n be_v many_o yet_o the_o lord_n will_v deliver_v they_o out_o of_o and_o though_o this_o pregnant_a security_n of_o return_v be_v not_o express_o give_v to_o every_o prisoner_n as_o it_o be_v here_o to_o joseph_n yet_o all_o that_o fear_n god_n have_v this_o to_o comfort_v they_o that_o he_o have_v give_v his_o word_n he_o will_v make_v they_o bless_v mat._n 5.4_o and_o that_o as_o he_o have_v draw_v they_o to_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o name_n so_o he_o will_v never_o leave_v they_o till_o he_o have_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o that_o whether_o they_o die_v in_o egypt_n under_o the_o furnace_n of_o affliction_n or_o come_v forth_o of_o egypt_n all_o shall_v work_v for_o their_o salvation_n and_o this_o his_o wisdom_n have_v not_o only_o dispose_v of_o the_o general_a end_n which_o be_v his_o glory_n but_o of_o the_o mean_n also_o how_o he_o will_v bring_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o though_o it_o be_v through_o the_o river_n of_o water_n what_o skill_v it_o if_o we_o have_v the_o crown_n at_o last_o 5.18_o job._n 5.18_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o wound_v shall_v bind_v up_o the_o wound_n again_o and_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o smite_v shall_v heal_v and_o the_o same_o god_n that_o lay_v we_o before_o in_o the_o ash_n shall_v give_v we_o oil_n to_o make_v our_o face_n cheerful_a 12.8_o psal_n 104.15_o act._n 12.8_o &_o by_o a_o warrant_n from_o heaven_n discharge_v peter_n of_o his_o chain_n when_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o enemy_n he_o stand_v condemn_v and_o make_v joseph_n return_v out_o of_o that_o barbarous_a nation_n egypt_n wherein_o god_n be_v so_o much_o dishonour_v to_o exercise_v himself_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o galilee_n and_o though_o we_o have_v no_o certain_a promise_n of_o this_o yet_o let_v we_o be_v affect_v like_o david_n who_o wander_v 2._o sam._n 15.25_o through_o the_o mountain_n in_o great_a divinesse_n his_o grief_n be_v increase_v because_o he_o be_v banish_v by_o his_o own_o son_n and_o supplant_v by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o achitophel_n his_o ●hiefe_a counsellor_n when_o he_o see_v he_o can_v not_o have_v the_o ark_n with_o ●im_n bid_v it_o shall_v be_v carry_v again_o into_o jerusalem_n say_v if_o i_o ●ave_n find_v favour_n in_o god_n sight_n he_o will_v bring_v i_o thither_o again_o but_o if_o he_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o i_o let_v he_o do_v as_o seem_v best_a to_o ●im_v for_o either_o in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o trouble_n we_o shall_v be_v gather_v to_o god_n in_o peace_n 56.13_o psal_n 56.13_o or_o else_o he_o will_v let_v we_o see_v his_o goodness_n in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o live_n now_o the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v safe_a for_o joseph_n to_o return_v be_v because_o herod_n be_v dead_a where_o we_o learn_v to_o our_o comfort_n that_o tyrant_n shall_v ●ot_n live_v ever_o and_o when_o they_o perish_v and_o fall_v away_o then_o be_v the_o church_n deliver_v and_o comfort_v for_o this_o death_n of_o his_o be_v no_o doubt_n as_o cheerful_a to_o anna_n and_o simeon_n at_o jerusalem_n as_o to_o joseph_n and_o mary_n in_o egypt_n and_o rachel_n that_o before_o be_v bring_v in_o weep_v over_o the_o innocent_a blood_n of_o the_o poor_a child_n as_o if_o the_o grave_n have_v feel_v such_o barbarous_a and_o beastly_a cruelty_n may_v now_o be_v think_v to_o break_v forth_o into_o exceed_a joy_n that_o such_o a_o rakehell_n be_v take_v away_o as_o herod_n be_v that_o seek_v the_o life_n of_o christ_n how_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v affect_v at_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o wicked_a appear_v psalm_n 52._o where_o although_o doeg_n have_v get_v great_a authority_n with_o saul_n so_o as_o he_o boast_v in_o his_o power_n &_o trust_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o malice_n his_o tongue_n be_v as_o the_o sharp_a razor_n always_o cut_v or_o as_o the_o coal_n of_o juniper_n always_o raise_v contention_n against_o the_o saint_n yet_o the_o lord_n shall_v destroy_v he_o and_o though_o he_o think_v to_o have_v build_v his_o nest_n in_o the_o heaven_n yet_o shall_v the_o lord_n cast_v he_o down_o and_o the_o righteous_a say_v he_o shall_v see_v it_o and_o rejoice_v the_o wicked_a be_v blind_a never_o behold_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v laugh_v not_o in_o revenge_n but_o to_o see_v god_n mercy_n in_o take_v part_n with_o the_o godly_a and_o not_o only_o the_o righteous_a shall_v joy_v at_o this_o but_o as_o job._n 20_o 26._o say_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o ●●per_n shall_v slay_v they_o that_o be_v the_o very_a wicked_a shall_v curse_v they_o 〈◊〉_d prince_n that_o want_v religion_n soon_o slip_v into_o tyranny_n and_o want●●●_n conscience_n to_o moderate_v their_o desire_n and_o affection_n to_o look_v upon_o their_o subject_n they_o will_v soon_o resemble_v rehoboam_n 1._o ●_z 12.10_o in_o make_v the_o yoke_n heavy_a and_o correct_v they_o 〈◊〉_d scorpion_n further_o from_o hence_o learn_v that_o god_n do_v often_o so_o disappoint_v the_o plot_n and_o purpose_n of_o cruel_a tyrant_n that_o when_o they_o intend_v to_o execute_v other_o they_o die_v first_o themselves_o and_o sometime_o haman_n ester_n 7.10_o be_v hang_v on_o his_o own_o gallows_n th●●_n he_o prepare_v for_o mordecai_n herod_n have_v think_v to_o have_v kill●●_n christ_n but_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o die_v himself_o if_o m●ses_n come_v any_o more_o into_o pharaoh_n sight_n he_o shall_v sure_o die_v ex●●_n 10.28_o well_o moses_n will_v see_v his_o face_n no_o more_o but_o
neither_o be_v this_o contrary_n to_o that_o god_n will_v not_o the_o death_n of_o a_o sinner_n for_o the_o difference_n be_v this_o god_n will_v not_o the_o confusion_n simple_o of_o any_o man_n as_o a_o thing_n wherein_o he_o delight_v but_o he_o will_v it_o as_o it_o be_v his_o justice_n and_o what_o great_a or_o better_a justice_n can_v there_o be_v then_o to_o be_v glorify_v in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o some_o that_o have_v deserve_v it_o and_o he_o must_v be_v no_o more_o unwilling_o just_a then_o unwilling_o merciful_a further_o learn_v that_o even_o in_o this_o life_n the_o godly_a be_v gather_v to_o heaven_n and_o so_o of_o the_o wicked_a that_o though_o they_o live_v yet_o they_o be_v in_o hell_n so_o s._n john_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v be_v already_o pass_v to_o life_n 5.24_o john_n 5.24_o and_o heb._n 12.22_o we_o be_v gather_v already_o to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o just_a and_o perfect_a man_n through_o hope_n and_o we_o be_v as_o sure_a to_o have_v that_o we_o hope_v for_o as_o we_o be_v of_o this_o we_o have_v already_o namely_o the_o pledge_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o ephes_n 2._o we_o he_o have_v gather_v to_o the_o celestical_a place_n under_o hope_n speak_v as_o if_o it_o be_v already_o do_v though_o the_o real_a gather_v shall_v be_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v say_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n he_o that_o beleve_v not_o be_v already_o damn_a the_o word_n be_v fearful_a but_o it_o be_v so_o set_v down_o to_o express_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o not_o but_o that_o he_o that_o be_v not_o belove_v ose_n 2.23_o may_v be_v belove_v and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o under_o mercy_n 1._o pet._n 2.10_o may_v obtain_v mercy_n but_o look_v in_o what_o state_n a_o man_n be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o same_o shall_v he_o be_v after_o this_o life_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v bind_v on_o earth_n be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o they_o that_o be_v not_o bind_v here_o be_v privy_a hypocrite_n be_v notwithstanding_o bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o shall_v be_v so_o in_o hell_n also_o for_o the_o last_o which_o be_v unquenchable_a fire_n thereby_o be_v mean_v the_o condemnation_n prepare_v for_o the_o reprobate_n not_o that_o we_o must_v imagine_v there_o be_v any_o natural_a fire_n there_o for_o first_o this_o fire_n can_v not_o pierce_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n nor_o the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n and_o the_o pain_n must_v extend_v both_o to_o soul_n and_o body_n second_o it_o be_v no_o more_o natural_a fire_n than_o it_o be_v a_o bodily_a worm_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o gospel_n which_o shall_v gnaw_v the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n of_o the_o damn_a 9.44_o mark_n 9.44_o three_o in_o esay_n 30.33_o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a lake_n prepare_v for_o king_n with_o fire_n of_o much_o wood_n and_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o think_v there_o be_v any_o wood_n there_o and_o a_o river_n of_o brimstone_n burn_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v intend_v of_o material_a brimstone_n but_o it_o be_v set_v out_o by_o such_o term_n to_o express_v the_o unspeakable_a torment_n of_o it_o not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v much_o less_o to_o be_v endure_v for_o the_o torment_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n even_o to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v strange_a and_o terrible_a therefore_o these_o speech_n be_v use_v to_o convey_v to_o our_o understanding_n what_o we_o can_v not_o before_o conceive_v so_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o bond_n or_o chain_n there_o 22.13_o mat._n 22.13_o but_o the_o meaning_n only_o be_v that_o they_o be_v the_o prisoner_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o ever_o never_o to_o be_v release_v but_o to_o be_v restrain_v from_o all_o liberty_n whereby_o they_o may_v in_o any_o sort_n be_v ease_v again_o hell_n fire_n be_v call_v gehenna_n or_o topheth_n which_o be_v a_o little_a place_n where_o the_o israelite_n do_v sacrifice_v their_o child_n in_o fire_n to_o the_o devil_n this_o be_v take_v for_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o reprobate_n now_o this_o torment_n be_v express_v two_o way_n first_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o it_o second_o in_o the_o permanencie_n of_o it_o the_o first_o two_o way_n first_o by_o that_o they_o shall_v feel_v both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n second_o by_o that_o they_o shall_v lose_v both_o of_o they_o express_v 2._o thess_n 1.9_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o his_o presence_n and_o bind_v in_o chain_n in_o everlasting_a darkness_n the_o greatness_n of_o this_o torment_n be_v express_v two_o way_n first_o it_o shall_v be_v universal_a in_o all_o part_n and_o it_o be_v most_o fearful_a in_o this_o life_n to_o be_v pain_v in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n at_o one_o time_n second_o the_o particular_a torment_n th●_n every_o one_o in_o hell_n shall_v feel_v as_o that_o prince_n shall_v be_v torment_v like_o prince_n every_o one_o according_a to_o the_o sin_n that_o he_o wrought_v in_o his_o body_n 10.15_o mat._n 10.15_o as_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodom_n then_o for_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v in_o hell_n already_o for_o the_o damnation_n of_o belzebub_n shall_v be_v the_o great_a and_o then_o of_o they_o that_o sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o none_o of_o these_o shall_v have_v so_o much_o as_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n to_o cool_v their_o toongue_n but_o they_o shall_v continual_o be_v blaspheme_v of_o god_n for_o the_o which_o they_o shall_v continual_o be_v torment_v and_o though_o this_o shall_v be_v great_a and_o grievous_a such_o as_o they_o can_v yet_o they_o must_v abide_v yet_o shall_v it_o be_v a_o far_o great_a hell_n unto_o they_o to_o think_v they_o have_v lose_v heaven_n see_v god_n child_n to_o rejoice_v that_o their_o persecutor_n be_v now_o plague_v and_o that_o god_n be_v so_o avenge_v of_o they_o for_o their_o sake_n for_o the_o second_o which_o be_v the_o endlesnesse_n of_o this_o torment_n it_o be_v a_o fire_n that_o shall_v never_o go_v out_o nor_o the_o flame_n whereof_o can_n never_o be●bated_v if_o there_o be_v but_o as_o many_o year_n to_o endure_v it_o as_o there_o be_v grass_n pile_n on_o earth_n or_o star_n in_o heaven_n the_o conscience_n may_v somewhat_o through_o hope_n be_v ease_v because_o at_o length_n it_o shall_v cease_v but_o the_o end_n thereof_o can_v be_v imagine_v and_o this_o word_n never_o be_v fearful_a let_v this_o therefore_o teach_v we_o right_o to_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n that_o we_o may_v be_v wheat_n in_o this_o earthly_a floor_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v be_v gather_v into_o his_o heavenly_a garner_n math_n chap._n 3._o vers_fw-la 13_o 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o verse_n 13_o then_o come_v jesus_n from_o galilee_n to_o jordan_n unto_o john_n to_o he_o baptize_v of_o he_o verse_n 14_o but_o john_n earnest_o put_v he_o back_o say_v i_o have_v need_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o thou_o and_o come_v thou_o to_o i_o verse_n 15_o then_o jesus_n answer_v say_v to_o he_o let_v be_v now_o for_o thus_o it_o become_v we_o to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n so_o he_o suffer_v he_o verse_n 16_o and_o jesus_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v come_v straight_o out_o of_o the_o water_n and_z lo_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o john_n see_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v like_o a_o dive_v and_o light_n on_o he_o verse_n 17_o and_o lo_n a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o beloloved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v now_o the_o evangelist_n proceed_v to_o show_v now_o john_n exercise_v part_n of_o his_o ministry_n even_o towards_o the_o messiah_n himself_o and_o set_v down_o how_o after_o christ_n have_v live_v long_o in_o nazareth_n contain_v himself_o in_o joseph_n house_n till_o his_o heavenly_a father_n shall_v consecrate_v he_o and_o call_v he_o forth_o to_o the_o great_a work_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o majesty_n he_o be_v now_o of_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n come_v to_o john_n and_o require_v to_o be_v baptize_v in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o man_n be_v to_o join_v himself_o to_o they_o that_o confess_v their_o sin_n john_n by_o revelation_n perceive_v that_o he_o be_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o never_o meet_v before_o this_o be_v in_o wise_a doom_n provide_v of_o the_o lord_n lest_o it_o may_v have_v seem_v a_o compact_n between_o they_o two_o to_o cozen_v the_o world_n refuse_v to_o do_v it_o and_o put_v he_o back_o earnest_o acknowledge_v christ_n excellency_n and_o his_o own_o unworthiness_n in_o this_o betray_v the_o error_n of_o his_o
all_o grace_n and_o so_o true_o be_v it_o seal_v unto_o our_o soul_n that_o we_o eat_v christ_n though_o not_o corporal_o by_o the_o word_n we_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n continual_o by_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v only_o more_o plain_a that_o we_o eat_v it_o because_o two_o sense_n be_v satisfy_v by_o it_o the_o ear_n hear_v the_o word_n and_o the_o eye_n see_v the_o bread_n for_o the_o three_o testimony_n there_o come_v a_o voice_n from_o heaume_n by_o the_o former_a miracle_n the_o lord_n only_o provide_v for_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o eye_n but_o now_o he_o provide_v for_o the_o ear_n also_o where_o we_o learn_v the_o wonderful_a wisdom_n and_o love_n of_o god_n to_o exercise_v all_o our_o sense_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o certain_a persuasion_n of_o these_o mystery_n among_o the_o philosopher_n be_v a_o great_a question_n whether_o the_o sense_n of_o sight_n or_o of_o hear_v be_v better_a in_o itself_o true_a it_o be_v that_o sight_n in_o nature_n be_v more_o excellent_a as_o for_o celerity_n and_o quickenesse_n so_o for_o perspicuity_n and_o sharpness_n but_o if_o the_o doubt_n be_v make_v of_o the_o profit_n of_o these_o two_o then_o hear_v excel_v for_o we_o can_v see_v nothing_o but_o that_o be_v visible_a but_o many_o more_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v of_o which_o thereby_o may_v be_v convey_v to_o the_o heart_n to_o judge_v of_o so_o the_o largeness_n of_o hear_v be_v great_a in_o the_o profit_n beside_o no_o man_n profit_v by_o sight_n unless_o he_o understand_v it_o by_o hear_v for_o which_o cause_n it_o please_v god_n to_o apply_v both_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o it_o we_o never_o doubt_v of_o that_o we_o both_o see_v and_o hear_v faith_n come_v by_o hear_v rom._n 10.17_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bore_v the_o care_n psal_n 40._o and_o lead_v the_o eye_n to_o satisfy_v it_o set_v before_o it_o in_o baptism_n water_n and_o in_o the_o supper_n bread_n and_o wine_n so_o as_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o the_o hear_n may_v have_v the_o word_n and_o the_o eye_n the_o sacrament_n now_o in_o the_o voice_n consider_v what_o it_o do_v express_v namely_o th●_n that_o flesh_n which_o stand_v there_o before_o they_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o this_o he_o be_v two_o way_n first_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n of_o the_o eternal_a substance_n of_o his_o father_n howbeit_o let_v no_o man_n think_v fleshly_a of_o the_o matter_n for_o he_o depart_v with_o no_o substance_n nor_o have_v any_o manner_n of_o change_n second_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o mary_n not_o by_o nature_n or_o adoption_n for_o then_o there_o have_v be_v a_o time_n when_o he_o be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o by_o personal_a union_n the_o man_n christ_n being_n never_o a_o person_n by_o itself_o until_o it_o be_v personal_o unite_v to_o the_o godhead_n so_o as_o he_o be_v bear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o by_o nature_n for_o he_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o mother_n &_o so_o mary_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o god_n not_o that_o she_o bring_v forth_o god_n but_o bring_v forth_o that_o man_n that_o be_v god_n and_o this_o in_o respect_n only_o of_o the_o personal_a union_n in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n understand_v that_o all_o lo●●_n come_v from_o he_o that_o come_v to_o we_o and_o we_o be_v belove_v only_o for_o christ_n sake_n as_o ch●●●_n 〈…〉_o pray_v john_n 17._o i_o beseech_v thou_o good_a father_n that_o as_o 〈…〉_o ●●●d_v i_o so_o thou_o will_v love_v they_o and_o give_v they_o the_o same_o glory_n thou_o guess_v i_o this_o be_v god_n require_v to_o do_v by_o his_o own_o son_n who_o can_v a●ke_v nothing_o shall_v be_v deny_v he_o with_o the_o same_o love_n love_v thou_o they_o as_o i_o be_o in_o they_o so_o be_v they_o in_o i_o and_o this_o minister_v singular_a consolation_n that_o when_o we_o consider_v christ_n to_o be_v belove_v we_o may_v withal_o remember_v that_o with_o the_o same_o love_n the_o lord_n love_v his_o natural_a son_n with_o the_o same_o do_v he_o love_v we_o that_o be_v adopt_v so_o as_o when_o he_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o his_o son_n in_o who_o forehead_n as_o in_o a_o golden_a plate_n be_v write_v all_o our_o name_n he_o turn_v from_o our_o filthiness_n and_o embrace_v we_o as_o his_o own_o son_n and_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v all_o one_o in_o desire_n the_o lord_n grant_v we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v it_o and_o be_v willing_a to_o entertain_v it_o that_o this_o love_n may_v constrain_v we_o to_o love_v he_o again_o otherwise_o it_o bring_v forth_o no_o effectual_a fruit_n in_o us._n again_o since_o the_o father_n take_v all_o delight_n in_o this_o son_n christ_n jesus_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a trinity_n be_v here_o at_o his_o baptise_v and_o that_o the_o father_n say_v in_o another_o place_n son_n i_o will_v glorify_v thou_o still_o 12.28_o john_n 12.28_o let_v we_o learn_v to_o magnify_v the_o lord_n jesus_n let_v he_o be_v our_o joy_n for_o who_o be_v there_o in_o heaven_n or_o earth_n in_o who_o we_o can_v set_v our_o delight_n better_a than_o on_o he_o which_o thus_o please_v the_o father_n let_v we_o love_v he_o that_o god_n love_v he_o be_v the_o only_a priest_n to_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o the_o only_a advocate_n to_o plead_v for_o we_o the_o only_a prophet_n to_o instruct_v we_o the_o only_a king_n to_o govern_v we_o the_o only_a shield_n to_o defend_v we_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v rich_a through_o his_o grace_n only_o righteous_a through_o his_o obedience_n only_o safe_a through_o his_o protection_n only_o and_o save_v through_o his_o mediation_n only_o he_o that_o glorify_v the_o son_n glorify_v god_n and_o he_o that_o rest_v under_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o son_n shroud_v himself_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o most_o high_a then_o accurse_v be_v that_o man_n or_o that_o religion_n that_o hold_v christ_n but_o as_o the_o chief_a saviour_n and_o will_v have_v other_o help_n join_v to_o he_o for_o we_o must_v only_o have_v christ_n and_o whole_o christ_n and_o assure_v ourselves_o to_o be_v ●aved_v only_o in_o he_o our_o prayer_n to_o be_v hear_v only_o through_o he_o and_o our_o wound_n to_o be_v heal_v only_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o he_o and_o to_o what_o end_n shall_v we_o join_v other_o with_o he_o since_o all_o be_v belove_v only_o for_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n appe●●_n 〈…〉_o ●●er_o in_o this_o place_n a●_n namely_o the_o father_n voice_n 〈…〉_o ●esence_n in_o the_o do_v and_o christ_n manifest_v and_o 〈…〉_o flesh_n and_o these_o be_v several_a yet_o but_o on●●e_a ho●●●_n and_o all_o and_o every_o of_o they_o be_v le●●●uah_n it_o be_v a_o mystery_n only_o to_o be_v adore_v yet_o in_o some_o measure_n i●_n to_o be_v knoten_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v three_o person_n yet_o but_o one_o god_n as_o for_o example_n take_v three_o man_n paul_n james_n and_o john_n here_o be_v three_o person_n and_o three_o man_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o god_n for_o in_o thing_n that_o be_v create_v we_o must_v consider_v they_o be_v only_o limit_v therefore_o the_o same_o nature_n in_o john_n be_v not_o the_o same_o natu●●●_n singular_a and_o in_o specie_fw-la that_o be_v in_o paul_n because_o they_o be_v not_o only_o two_o person_n but_o divide_v in_o quantity_n and_o that_o particular_a nature_n in_o particular_a that_o be_v in_o john_n can_v be_v in_o paul_n so_o for_o angel_n take_v raphael_n gabriel_n and_o michael_n suppose_v he_o to_o be_v a_o create_a angel_n the_o same_o particular_a angelical_a nature_n that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d one_o be_v not_o in_o another_o for_o they_o be_v not_o only_o two_o person_n of_o angel_n but_o two_o nature_n not_o distinct_a but_o separate_a now_o in_o god_n 〈◊〉_d make_v a_o common_a essence_n which_o be_v jehovah_n wherein_o do_v cons●●●_n three_o elohim_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o three_o jehovahs_n because_o his_o nature_n be_v simple_a and_o the_o self_n same_o be_v in_o they_o all_o and_o the_o same_o be_v be_v in_o god_n the_o father_n that_o be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o be_v tota_fw-la to_o 〈◊〉_d in_o every_o one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o unity_n and_o if_o we_o will_v have_v th●●_n god_n then_o must_v we_o make_v a_o substance_n divide_v which_o can_v be_v but_o there_o be_v only_o a_o distinction_n angel_n be_v separate_v one_o from_o another_o and_o be_v one_o without_o another_o but_o in_o the_o trinity_n it_o be_v otherwise_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the●●_n both_o and_o they_o be_v all_o one_o the_o sun_n
if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v hypocrite_n we_o must_v array_n ourselves_o with_o a_o contrary_a garnishment_n cast_v down_o as_o 2._o cor._n 10.5_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v exalt_v against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n every_o thought_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n for_o as_o satan_n delight_v to_o have_v his_o house_n garnish_v and_o the_o full_a of_o sin_n thou_o be_v the_o fit_a for_o he_o as_o that_o if_o the_o cup_n be_v full_a of_o extortion_n if_o it_o be_v fair_a without_o mat._n 23.25_o he_o make_v thou_o think_v thyself_o a_o great_a scribe_n so_o also_o there_o be_v a_o furniture_n the_o lord_n delight_v in_o namely_o sanctification_n and_o as_o 2._o cor._n 7.1_o to_o keep_v our_o soul_n clean_o for_o since_o satan_n 〈◊〉_d need_v be_v do_v and_o willing_o content_v not_o himself_o to_o get_v the_o border_n but_o he_o will_v assay_v to_o take_v the_o arch_a city_n we_o that_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n must_v keep_v he_o occupy_v in_o some_o outhouse_n or_o outward_a member_n at_o the_o most_o and_o above_o all_o strive_v to_o shut_v he_o out_o of_o the_o bedchamber_n and_o from_o rule_v in_o the_o heart_n bear_v a_o religious_a care_n to_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v garnish_v in_o humility_n to_o receive_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o lord_n grace_n not_o except_v against_o any_o thing_n the_o lord_n will_v but_o show_v ourselves_o reformable_a to_o all_o he_o take_v seven_o other_o spirit_n worse_o etc._n etc._n as_o satan_n at_o his_o return_n find_v the_o field_n well_o grow_v and_o the_o heart_n of_o that_o man_n full_a of_o sin_n than_o before_o so_o the_o four_o thing_n follow_v namely_o what_o mean_v he_o use_v not_o to_o be_v turn_v out_o again_o he_o bring_v seven_o spirit_n worse_o than_o himself_o by_o this_o mean_n so_o to_o rampire_n this_o his_o fortress_n as_o to_o make_v it_o his_o continual_a mansion_n 23.15_o mat._n 23.15_o not_o to_o make_v he_o two_o fold_n worse_o as_o proselyte_n but_o seven_o time_n worse_o like_o devil_n wherein_o observe_v that_o god_n in_o justice_n be_v provoke_v to_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o ingratitude_n for_o his_o grace_n according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v offer_v so_o as_o satan_n upon_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o grace_n give_v shall_v prevail_v more_o than_o before_o which_o the_o lord_n do_v as_o a_o just_a revenger_n of_o sin_n for_o satan_n be_v chain_v that_o without_o his_o permission_n he_o can_v do_v nothing_o and_o the_o lord_n be_v always_o present_a vel_fw-la per_fw-la gratiam_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la vindictam_fw-la either_o by_o grace_n to_o prevent_v thy_o sin_n or_o by_o revenge_n to_o punish_v it_o and_o therefore_o thou_o that_o have_v spurn_v at_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o lord_n mercy_n that_o have_v think_v manna_n to_o be_v loathsome_a and_o sincerity_n in_o religion_n to_o be_v burdensome_a the_o lord_n shall_v so_o punish_v thou_o that_o the_o sin_n past_a shall_v be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n to_o come_v and_o the_o desert_n of_o punishment_n that_o be_v to_o come_v for_o if_o we_o think_v not_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n and_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v special_a mean_n to_o bring_v in_o satan_n look_v luk._n 13.26_o and_o it_o will_v make_v we_o take_v heed_n whether_o we_o come_v to_o they_o of_o conscience_n or_o of_o custom_n for_o christ_n may_v teach_v in_o our_o street_n and_o we_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v in_o his_o presence_n and_o yet_o not_o know_v we_o to_o be_v he_o for_o it_o be_v say_v to_o he_o that_o have_v profit_v shall_v more_o grace_n be_v give_v but_o if_o thou_o have_v only_o hear_v that_o grace_n 〈…〉_o have_v shall_v thou_o be_v spoil_v of_o 6.7_o heb._n 6.7_o and_o it_o fare_v with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d as_o with_o the_o rain_n that_o never_o fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n but_o if_o make_v the_o earth_n more_o barren_a or_o more_o fruitful_a so_o the_o word_n of_o god_n never_o return_v in_o vain_a but_o every_o man_n be_v make_v thereby_o either_o to_o savour_v damnation_n or_o salvation_n 26_o 2._o cor._n ●_o 26_o as_o saint_n paul_n speak_v even_o so_o it_o be_v also_o of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o though_o christ_n be_v kind_a in_o give_v the_o sop_n to_o a_o traitor_n yet_o we_o see_v john_n 13.2_o that_o after_o the_o sop_n give_v satan_n enter_v into_o judas_n for_o the_o more_o familiar_a and_o the_o better_o acquaint_v we_o be_v with_o the_o best_a of_o god_n grace_n the_o more_o shall_v our_o pain_n and_o torment_n be_v for_o our_o profane_a use_n of_o they_o second_o in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v seven_o spirit_n worse_a we_o must_v understand_v a_o very_a forcible_a seduce_a and_o great_a power_n of_o satan_n for_o here_o be_v put_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o a_o incertain_a seven_o spirit_n that_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o enormous_a sin_n express_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o act_n 5.3_o it_o be_v say_v satan_n have_v fill_v ananias_n heart_n that_o he_o shall_v lie_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o act._n 8.23_o of_o simon_n magus_n that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o gall_n of_o bitterness_n and_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n and_o act._n 13.8_o of_o elymas_n the_o sorcerer_n such_o a_o enemy_n of_o righteousness_n as_o the_o least_o occasion_n will_v move_v he_o to_o sin_n and_o have_v as_o eph._n 4.19_o their_o heart_n past_a feeling_n have_v give_v themselves_o to_o all_o wantonness_n and_o such_o as_o revel_v 22.11_o be_v filthy_a will_v be_v more_o filthy_a now_o if_o any_o shall_v expostulate_v and_o question_v why_o the_o lord_n will_v suffer_v this_o where_o he_o once_o bestow_v his_o grace_n we_o answer_v 2._o mat._n 2._o if_o the_o lord_n do_v gather_v where_o he_o sow_v not_o if_o he_o take_v away_o the_o talon_n for_o not_o use_v it_o to_o gain_v by_o a_o spiritual_a traffic_n then_o what_o shall_v his_o case_n be_v that_o cast_v the_o pearl_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o swine_n again_o as_o rom._n 1.20_o the_o lord_n do_v just_o condemn_v they_o that_o only_o have_v the_o law_n write_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o have_v no_o other_o spectacle_n than_o the_o book_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o thereby_o do_v see_v his_o power_n and_o justice_n in_o administer_a these_o inferior_a thing_n which_o he_o have_v create_v if_o i_o say_v as_o vers_n 24._o he_o give_v they_o up_o into_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o those_o that_o have_v the_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o lord_n and_o yet_o have_v tread_v he_o under_o foot_n but_o that_o they_o be_v give_v up_o into_o a_o triple_a reprobate_a sense_n since_o the_o gentile_n be_v cast_v away_o only_o for_o despise_v he_o in_o his_o creature_n and_o yet_o we_o despise_v he_o in_o his_o christ_n further_o in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v seven_o spirit_n worse_a observe_v th●_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o sin_n sinner_n and_o punishment_n for_o it_o be_v say_v they_o be_v worse_a yet_o the_o first_o be_v say_v to_o be_v unclean_a which_o we_o note_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v learn_v to_o extenuate_v any_o sin_n for_o think_v idle_a word_n be_v but_o a_o unclean_a spirit_n in_o respect_n of_o whoordome_n which_o be_v worse_o yet_o shall_v thou_o be_v judge_v for_o they_o aswell_o as_o for_o this_o in_o mat._n 5.22_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n of_o sin_n and_o punishment_n set_v down_o whosoever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n unaduised_o shall_v be_v culpable_a of_o judgement_n but_o he_o that_o say_v raca_n shall_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v by_o a_o council_n but_o who_o so_o shall_v say_v fool_n shall_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v with_o hell_n fire_n so_o as_o we_o see_v though_o some_o sin_n be_v more_o sharp_o punish_v than_o other_o yet_o the_o least_o be_v culpable_a of_o judgement_n so_o david_n psal_n 1.1_o pronounce_v blessedness_n to_o he_o that_o first_o have_v not_o walk_v second_o that_o stand_v not_o three_o that_o sit_v not_o in_o the_o sea●_n of_o the_o scornful_a that_o be_v have_v a_o resolute_a purpose_n to_o despise_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n hard_a shall_v it_o be_v for_o he_o than_o for_o the_o other_o and_o as_o the_o apostle_n saint_n jude_n v._n 7._o hard_a for_o they_o than_o for_o sodom_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v in_o hell_n for_o as_o all_o have_v not_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o grace_n in_o like_a measure_n so_o be_v it_o of_o the_o unclean_a spirit_n which_o reign_v more_o in_o some_o than_o in_o other_o withal_o observe_v the_o speech_n of_o s._n paul_n eph._n 4.30_o who_o after_o warn_v give_v not_o to_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n set_v down_o how_o one_o sin_n increase_v another_o as_o
saint_n of_o god_n and_o put_v religion_n on_o their_o face_n as_o a_o mask_n to_o hide_v the_o foul_a deformity_n &_o hypocrisy_n of_o their_o heart_n therefore_o upon_o the_o question_n demand_v whether_o more_o in_o number_n shall_v be_v save_v or_o damn_v christ_n resolve_v it_o luk._n 13.25_o show_v that_o some_o shall_v have_v bestow_v such_o pain_n and_o walk_v so_o far_o in_o the_o course_n of_o christianity_n as_o even_o to_o knock_v at_o heaven_n gate_n and_o to_o challenge_v the_o lord_n to_o let_v they_o in_o and_o yet_o he_o shall_v not_o know_v they_o that_o whatsoever_o profession_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n as_o to_o come_v before_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o p●●ple_n yet_o because_o they_o have_v not_o live_v as_o a_o people_n he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v they_o so_o as_o true_a it_o be_v that_o none_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o almighty_a but_o they_o that_o have_v their_o lamp_n burn_v at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n 25.10_o mat._n 25.10_o none_o but_o they_o that_o have_v their_o foundation_n settle_v upon_o the_o rock_n 7.25_o mat._n 7.25_o as_o not_o to_o be_v shake_v with_o the_o blast_n of_o any_o persecution_n none_o but_o they_o who_o like_o faithful_a servant_n by_o spiritual_a traffic_n have_v employ_v their_o talent_n to_o their_o lord_n advantage_n 19.24_o luk._n 19.24_o none_o but_o they_o that_o be_v able_a to_o testify_v by_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n but_o upon_o demand_v how_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v our_o answer_n be_v only_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o cause_n and_o effectual_a mean_n thereof_o for_o heaven_n be_v give_v operantibus_fw-la non_fw-la operibus_fw-la to_o worker_n not_o to_o work_n as_o 2._o cor._n 5.10_o the_o lord_n shall_v give_v to_o every_o man_n according_a as_o he_o have_v wrought_v not_o for_o that_o he_o have_v wrought_v &_o heb._n 13.21_o none_o shall_v see_v god_n without_o a_o pure_a conversation_n but_o not_o because_o of_o his_o pure_a conversation_n for_o though_o we_o must_v be_v perfect_a in_o work_n yet_o this_o work_n must_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o by_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v so_o likewise_o none_o but_o the_o obedient_a child_n shall_v be_v heir_n not_o because_o he_o be_v obedient_a but_o because_o he_o be_v heir_n and_o yet_o only_a the_o obedient_a child_n shall_v receive_v the_o inheritance_n and_o even_o as_o we_o adore_v and_o worship_n jesus_n christ_n man_n but_o not_o his_o humanity_n hominem_fw-la non_fw-la humanitatem_fw-la so_o holiness_n of_o life_n speak_v in_o the_o abstract_n quality_n do_v not_o save_v but_o holy_a man_n shall_v be_v save_v so_o faith_n and_o work_v in_o the_o person_n justify_v must_v concur_v but_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n faith_n only_a and_o alone_o have_v the_o place_n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v demand_v whether_o work_n be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n we_o answer_v yea_o as_o absolute_o necessary_a in_o their_o place_n as_o faith_n for_o we_o can_v not_o assure_v ourselves_o of_o faith_n but_o by_o the_o visible_a fruit_n of_o work_n so_o as_o they_o be_v not_o concausae_n cause_n concur_v and_o iump_v together_o but_o they_o be_v consectaria_fw-la consectary_n and_o consequent_n of_o faith_n verse_n 14._o for_o as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o confirmation_n of_o the_o reason_n before_o go_v on_o both_o part_n for_o as_o many_o as_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n by_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o do_v not_o so_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n so_o the_o force_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v they_o that_o be_v god_n son_n be_v lead_v to_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n and_o be_v his_o son_n they_o be_v inheritor_n of_o heaven_n and_o this_o the_o apostle_n assume_v and_o take_v as_o grant_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o have_v eternal_a life_n whereupon_o the_o contrary_a proposition_n be_v true_a he_o that_o live_v after_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o be_v he_o will_v live_v after_o the_o spirit_n but_o he_o that_o do_v not_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n hereupon_o follow_v if_o they_o be_v son_n and_o not_o god_n they_o be_v as_o christ_n speak_v john_n 8.44_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n wherein_o we_o learn_v that_o if_o we_o be_v ask_v by_o what_o title_n and_o interest_n we_o can_v challenge_v or_o lay_v claim_n to_o heaven_n it_o be_v by_o none_o but_o by_o this_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o we_o be_v his_o son_n only_o by_o adoption_n and_o we_o be_v adopt_v to_o it_o only_o in_o the_o natural_a heir_n and_o son_n of_o god_n christ_n jesus_n by_o who_o blood_n we_o be_v justify_v and_o sanctify_v by_o his_o spirit_n be_v then_o adopt_v to_o this_o inheritance_n as_o heir_n we_o be_v not_o bear_v to_o it_o for_o adoption_n exclude_v birth_n be_v not_o bear_v to_o it_o it_o be_v purchase_v for_o we_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n we_o must_v learn_v then_o to_o resemble_v christ_n in_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o he_o be_v and_o show_v forth_o and_o express_v our_o obedience_n by_o keep_v his_o commandment_n 26.42_o mat._n 26.42_o and_o keep_v they_o by_o leave_v of_o gross_a sin_n and_o walk_v according_a to_o his_o will_n with_o a_o full_a purpose_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o perform_v it_o always_o except_v our_o infirmity_n and_o inborn_a weakness_n which_o cleave_v so_o fast_o to_o we_o as_o we_o can_v shake_v they_o off_o nor_o be_v deliver_v of_o they_o till_o we_o overcome_v all_o in_o death_n have_v then_o no_o title_n to_o heaven_n but_o by_o inheritance_n nor_o no_o title_n to_o this_o inheritance_n but_o by_o christ_n there_o be_v exclude_v all_o merit_n to_o deserve_v it_o and_o only_o because_o we_o be_v to_o be_v save_v we_o must_v do_v well_o for_o it_o be_v give_v we_o as_o the_o inheritance_n of_o child_n and_o not_o as_o any_o stipendiary_a wage_n of_o a_o mercenary_a man_n herupon_o we_o must_v wise_o understand_v that_o when_o christ_n say_v mat._n 25.35_o come_v you_o bless_v etc._n etc._n for_o you_o have_v relieve_v the_o poor_a etc._n etc._n that_o this_o relieve_v of_o the_o poor_a and_o such_o other_o work_v of_o faith_n and_o love_n there_o mention_v be_v not_o set_v down_o as_o cause_n of_o blessedness_n for_o these_o speech_n for_o and_o because_o do_v not_o always_o infer_v and_o bring_v in_o a_o cause_n but_o they_o be_v such_o word_n and_o particle_n as_o sometime_o join_v the_o cause_n with_o the_o effect_n and_o sometime_o the_o effect_n with_o the_o cause_n as_o when_o we_o say_v it_o be_v spring_v time_n for_o it_o blossom_n not_o that_o the_o blossom_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o spring_n but_o a_o effect_n and_o evidence_n that_o the_o spring_n be_v come_v so_o when_o we_o say_v he_o have_v a_o soul_n because_o he_o breathe_v and_o yet_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o breath_n and_o breathe_v but_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o soul_n even_o so_o when_o christ_n say_v come_v and_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n for_o you_o have_v do_v such_o and_o such_o particular_a work_n of_o love_n it_o be_v only_o a_o knit_n of_o the_o effect_n with_o the_o cause_n for_o god_n have_v preelect_v or_o choose_v we_o before_o all_o world_n to_o this_o salvation_n give_v we_o this_o his_o spirit_n by_o who_o power_n and_o virtue_n we_o work_v these_o good_a thing_n and_o in_o this_o kind_n and_o phrase_n of_o speech_n the_o cause_n be_v join_v with_o the_o effect_n as_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v come_v you_o that_o have_v relieve_v the_o poor_a that_o have_v comfort_v the_o distress_a that_o have_v sorrow_v with_o the_o afflict_a receive_v the_o kingdom_n for_o it_o be_v your_o inheritance_n so_o as_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n have_v this_o meaning_n in_o it_o you_o have_v do_v good_a work_n to_o testify_v my_o kingdom_n to_o be_v you_o come_v take_v the_o inheritance_n prepare_v for_o you_o in_o the_o preelection_n of_o god_n for_o you_o be_v the_o inheritor_n of_o heaven_n because_o of_o these_o fruit_n and_o effect_n which_o you_o have_v show_v in_o comfort_v the_o afflict_a member_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v not_o take_v it_o then_o that_o heaven_n which_o be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v give_v for_o any_o desert_n for_o when_o we_o have_v attain_v to_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o mortification_n and_o have_v do_v all_o that_o we_o can_v we_o be_v as_o christ_n say_v but_o unprofitable_a servant_n 17.10_o luk._n 17.10_o true_a say_v the_o papist_n unprofitable_a
sense_n that_o all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o yet_o reveal_v for_o part_n be_v in_o heaven_n part_n in_o earth_n and_o part_n of_o they_o not_o yet_o bear_v second_o touch_v the_o son_n of_o god_n on_o earth_n they_o be_v not_o all_o yet_o reveal_v in_o regard_n that_o the_o lord_n call_v daily_a and_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o fresh_a addition_n to_o his_o church_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o word_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n peter_n by_o one_o sermon_n act._n 2.41_o convert_n three_o thousand_o soul_n to_o christ_n three_o they_o be_v not_o all_o yet_o reveal_v on_o earth_n because_o the_o wicked_a can_v discern_v they_o for_o as_o christ_n be_v visible_a here_o with_o we_o yet_o be_v not_o know_v to_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n their_o eye_n through_o ignorance_n and_o malice_n be_v so_o shut_v as_o they_o can_v not_o see_v he_o even_o so_o though_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v visible_a in_o themselves_o yet_o to_o the_o malicious_a and_o ungodly_a they_o be_v invisible_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n to_o spy_v they_o out_o four_o the_o son_n of_o god_n here_o on_o earth_n be_v not_o yet_o reveal_v to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o elias_n 1_o king_n 19.14.18_o think_v there_o have_v be_v none_o leave_v but_o himself_o to_o serve_v god_n when_o the_o lord_n unknowen_a to_o he_o have_v reserve_v seven_o thousand_o that_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n five_o there_o be_v many_o hypocrite_n among_o we_o in_o which_o respect_n the_o son_n of_o god_n on_o earth_n be_v not_o yet_o reveal_v but_o at_o the_o latter_a day_n when_o the_o angel_n shall_v come_v to_o make_v a_o separation_n then_o shall_v the_o fish_n be_v know_v from_o the_o frog_n the_o sheep_n from_o the_o goat_n and_o the_o sincere_a professor_n from_o the_o dissembler_n for_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o bed_n the_o one_o receive_v the_o other_o refuse_v who_o before_o be_v so_o link_v in_o fellowship_n as_o it_o be_v undiscernible_a that_o in_o their_o death_n they_o shall_v have_v such_o several_a end_n howbeit_o the_o better_a sense_n for_o these_o word_n when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v reveal_v be_v this_o when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v receive_v up_o to_o glory_n for_o than_o shall_v they_o know_v as_o they_o be_v know_v and_o then_o shall_v the_o restitution_n come_v when_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o grave_n shall_v yield_v up_o all_o their_o dead_a and_o all_o the_o creature_n receive_v as_o it_o be_v their_o first_o robe_n of_o purity_n and_o goodness_n wherein_o they_o be_v create_v now_o vers_fw-la 20._o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o the_o reason_n why_o these_o insensible_a creature_n do_v thus_o wait_v for_o man_n glorious_a liberty_n because_o they_o themselves_o be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n wherein_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v two_o thing_n first_o to_o what_o they_o be_v subject_a second_o by_o who_o they_o be_v make_v subject_a that_o the_o creature_n be_v subject_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o because_o it_o be_v grant_v of_o all_o man_n but_o this_o be_v no_o willing_a nor_o voluntary_a subjection_n but_o by_o force_n and_o constraint_n for_o the_o horse_n must_v have_v his_o rough_a rider_n or_o else_o the_o snaffle_n will_v not_o hold_v he_o in_o and_o the_o ox_n must_v have_v his_o yoke_n on_o his_o neck_n and_o his_o goad_n in_o his_o side_n or_o else_o he_o will_v not_o draw_v well_o and_o the_o mule_n as_o david_n say_v psal_n 32.9_o must_v have_v his_o mouth_n bind_v with_o the_o bit_n and_o bridle_n lest_o he_o come_v near_o thou_o with_o his_o heel_n now_o that_o which_o the_o creature_n be_v subject_a to_o be_v here_o say_a to_o be_v to_o vanity_n and_o vers_fw-la 21._o to_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n that_o be_v to_o a_o vanish_v and_o fleet_a estate_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o in_o three_o respect_n first_o in_o respect_n they_o have_v lose_v their_o first_o comeliness_n and_o order_n their_o first_o beauty_n and_o their_o first_o perfection_n in_o which_o they_o be_v create_v for_o as_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o that_o gold_n that_o have_v be_v try_v seven_o time_n in_o the_o fire_n and_o that_o which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o vein_n of_o the_o earth_n mix_v with_o other_o metal_n between_o that_o sword_n that_o be_v new_o varnish_v and_o that_o which_o have_v line_n so_o long_o by_o as_o it_o be_v eat_v through_o with_o rust_n between_o the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n in_o his_o brightness_n &_o when_o it_o be_v eclipse_v or_o shine_v in_o a_o gloomy_a day_n so_o be_v there_o as_o great_a or_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &_o all_o the_o host_n therein_o which_o then_o be_v make_v for_o the_o furnish_n of_o god_n house_n towards_o the_o entertainment_n of_o adam_n his_o son_n in_o paradise_n and_o the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n which_o now_o be_v leave_v unto_o we_o poison_v by_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n for_o adam_n sin_n with_o thorn_n and_o thistle_n barrenness_n and_o unwholesome_a smell_n that_o the_o very_a corruption_n in_o the_o air_n kill_v both_o they_o &_o us._n second_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n in_o regard_n the_o wicked_a do_v enjoy_v they_o and_o the_o godly_a oftentimes_o abuse_v they_o for_o the_o rust_n of_o the_o money_n which_o the_o usurer_n hoord_v up_o cry_v in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v detain_v by_o the_o unjust_a owner_n the_o gay_a apparel_n of_o the_o proud_a and_o ambitious_a do_v fret_v as_o it_o be_v themselves_o that_o they_o shall_v hide_v the_o shame_n of_o they_o that_o be_v so_o shameless_a to_o snatch_v at_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n &_o to_o shake_v his_o seat_n by_o their_o sin_n the_o wine_n which_o be_v swill_v in_o by_o the_o drunkard_n do_v boil_v as_o it_o be_v in_o wrath_n that_o it_o be_v press_v out_o of_o the_o grape_n to_o heat_v their_o stomach_n that_o deserve_v only_a to_o be_v inflame_v by_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n yea_o and_o every_o morsel_n that_o fall_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o glutton_n and_o wicked_a person_n the_o sun_n that_o shine_v on_o the_o unjust_a and_o the_o rain_n that_o light_v upon_o the_o field_n of_o the_o oppressor_n and_o all_o creature_n else_o that_o come_v within_o their_o finger_n be_v grieve_v and_o do_v wait_v with_o fervency_n for_o the_o end_n of_o all_o flesh_n that_o they_o may_v no_o long_o be_v force_v to_o serve_v and_o sustain_v the_o enemy_n of_o their_o maker_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v so_o heavy_a and_o burdensome_a and_o their_o abuse_n of_o the_o creature_n so_o intolerable_a that_o the_o earth_n groan_v that_o it_o can_v swallow_v they_o up_o as_o it_o do_v korah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n numb_a 16.32_o or_o otherwise_o be_v disburden_v of_o they_o though_o to_o her_o own_o desolation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o universal_a flood_n gen._n 7.21_o and_o again_o if_o we_o that_o be_v sanctify_v use_v they_o otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n as_o that_o the_o sun_n shall_v give_v we_o light_n to_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n that_o we_o shall_v otherwise_o be_v clothe_v then_o as_o become_v christian_n or_o any_o further_o refresh_v by_o recreation_n then_o to_o make_v we_o the_o fit_a for_o the_o range_v of_o ourselves_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o our_o calling_n herein_o do_v we_o also_o make_v they_o subject_a to_o vanity_n because_o we_o shall_v use_v the_o world_n as_o if_o we_o use_v it_o not_o with_o such_o moderation_n and_o comeliness_n as_o not_o to_o snatch_v at_o any_o of_o they_o or_o to_o profane_v they_o for_o it_o be_v against_o the_o law_n of_o truce_n when_o we_o be_v at_o league_n with_o any_o either_o to_o surprise_v they_o or_o abuse_v they_o and_o we_o through_o christ_n be_v at_o league_n and_o peace_n with_o all_o the_o creature_n as_o job_n say_v chap_n 5.23_o three_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n in_o regard_n those_o shall_v die_v which_o have_v life_n in_o they_o and_o the_o rest_n shall_v be_v clean_o melt_v and_o dissolve_v for_o this_o heaven_n and_o earth_n we_o now_o see_v shall_v hereafter_o be_v abolish_v as_o it_o be_v say_v esay_n 65.17_o i_o will_v create_v new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o the_o former_a shall_v not_o be_v remember_v nor_o come_v into_o mind_n and_o psal_n 102.25.26_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n say_v david_n to_o the_o lord_n they_o shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o shall_v endure_v they_o shall_v wax_v old_a as_o do_v a_o garment_n and_o revel_v 21.1_o i_o see_v say_v john_n a_o new_a
heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n for_o the_o first_o heaven_n and_o the_o first_o earth_n be_v pass_v away_o which_o agree_v with_o that_o 2._o pet._n 3.10_o the_o heaven_n shall_v pass_v away_o with_o a_o noise_n and_o the_o element_n shall_v melt_v with_o heat_n and_o the_o earth_n with_o the_o work_v therein_o shall_v be_v burn_v up_o and_o howsoeure_n to_o our_o dim_a and_o unstable_a sight_n the_o heaven_n with_o the_o furniture_n thereof_o seem_v very_o glorious_a and_o beautiful_a yet_o every_o day_n they_o decay_v and_o diminish_v by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o be_v already_o as_o a_o old_a wear_v and_o rot_a garment_n ready_a to_o be_v cast_v off_o and_o fold_v up_o by_o the_o lord_n have_v thus_o see_v the_o threefold_a subjection_n of_o the_o creature_n first_o unto_o diminution_n of_o their_o first_o estate_n second_o unto_o profanation_n and_o pollution_n three_o unto_o dissolution_n it_o now_o follow_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o second_o thing_n point_v at_o before_o namely_o by_o who_o the_o creature_n be_v make_v thus_o subject_a and_o this_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o verse_n 20._o not_o of_o their_o own_o will_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o he_o that_o be_v god_n which_o have_v subdue_v it_o under_o hope_n that_o they_o may_v herein_o obey_v the_o creator_n commandment_n who_o be_v please_v to_o signify_v by_o their_o waver_a and_o transitory_a estate_n what_o the_o weight_n of_o his_o displeasure_n be_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n yet_o be_v his_o mercy_n such_o as_o he_o will_v not_o subdue_v the_o world_n ever_o lastinglie_o under_o his_o curse_n but_o give_v it_o hope_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v restore_v where_o learn_v the_o great_a severity_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o vengeance_n for_o the_o rebellion_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n which_o bound_v not_o itself_o within_o the_o body_n of_o man_n who_o be_v the_o sole_a offender_n but_o extend_v itself_o as_o a_o cloud_n over_o all_o the_o inferior_a work_n of_o god_n which_o be_v make_v for_o man_n as_o his_o servant_n and_o this_o show_v the_o offence_n to_o be_v very_o high_a that_o it_o draw_v so_o heinous_a a_o plague_n after_o it_o for_o we_o must_v not_o in_o our_o vain_a and_o perverse_a thought_n against_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n lessen_v the_o sin_n of_o adam_n as_o be_v but_o the_o eat_n of_o a_o apple_n which_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n since_o he_o eat_v so_o temperate_o as_o but_o to_o ●●ste_v of_o it_o and_o do_v neither_o spoil_n nor_o dig_v up_o any_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o the_o garden_n make_v god_n as_o a_o hard_a and_o niggardlie_a master_n that_o will_v take_v so_o exact_a a_o account_n and_o strict_a reckon_n of_o his_o steward_n for_o every_o particular_a fruit_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n and_o hereupon_o will_v dare_v challenge_n god_n as_o if_o his_o hand_n have_v be_v too_o heavy_a upon_o he_o o_o beware_v of_o these_o damnable_a and_o hellish_a conceit_n for_o first_o know_v thou_o it_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o a_o reprobate_a to_o think_v with_o cain_n gen._n 4.13_o thy_o punishment_n great_a than_o thy_o offence_n for_o herein_o though_o it_o be_v but_o in_o secret_a do_v he_o secret_o charge_v god_n with_o cruelty_n who_o as_o abraham_n say_v gen._n 18.25_o be_v judge_n of_o all_o the_o world_n can_v but_o do_v right_a again_o the_o liberty_n that_o adam_n have_v to_o fill_v himself_o of_o all_o the_o other_o tree_n this_o one_o except_v show_v the_o admirable_a bounty_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o fruit_n he_o keep_v but_o one_o for_o himself_o as_o of_o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n he_o have_v reserve_v but_o one_o in_o a_o special_a sort_n for_o his_o own_o use_n be_v herein_o more_o spare_v to_o himself_o then_o to_o adam_n or_o to_o we_o yet_o do_v we_o profane_v that_o most_o because_o it_o be_v none_o of_o we_o as_o adam_n do_v thirst_n after_o that_o tree_n most_o because_o by_o special_a commandment_n it_o be_v forbid_v by_o god_n wherein_o his_o rebellion_n be_v much_o increase_v that_o can_v not_o be_v thankful_a for_o the_o store_n he_o have_v but_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v starve_v if_o he_o want_v this_o that_o be_v forbid_v must_v set_v the_o edge_n of_o his_o appetite_n upon_o this_o which_o be_v so_o forbid_v threfore_o have_v god_n measure_v forth_o a_o even_a plague_n of_o perfection_n equal_a with_o his_o sin_n of_o presumption_n be_v punish_v not_o only_o in_o himself_o but_o in_o his_o whole_a posterity_n with_o sorrow_n not_o only_o upon_o his_o body_n but_o with_o anguish_n and_o horror_n upon_o his_o soul_n also_o and_o not_o only_o with_o trouble_n and_o vexation_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o entrance_n into_o this_o life_n be_v naked_a and_o not_o able_a to_o clothe_v himself_o hungry_a and_o want_v strength_n to_o feed_v himself_o weak_a and_o not_o of_o power_n to_o arm_v himself_o but_o also_o be_v follow_v and_o pursue_v of_o this_o vexation_n both_o in_o the_o continuance_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n feed_v sour_o upon_o his_o labour_n and_o die_v lothsome_o if_o the_o curse_n be_v not_o remove_v in_o christ_n and_o languishinglie_o upon_o his_o bed_n his_o pain_n here_o be_v but_o the_o forerunner_n and_o remembrancer_n of_o weighty_a that_o be_v to_o come_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v nay_o the_o lord_n have_v make_v his_o justice_n like_o a_o hook_n to_o run_v through_o the_o nostril_n of_o all_o his_o creature_n they_o be_v all_o accurse_a for_o our_o sake_n for_o as_o job_n say_v chap._n 5.6_o misery_n come_v not_o forth_o of_o the_o dust_n neither_o do_v affliction_n spring_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n mean_v original_o of_o itself_o but_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n this_o be_v prefigure_v out_o unto_o we_o levit._fw-la 15._o under_o the_o law_n for_o when_o one_o have_v the_o leprosy_n the_o bed_n he_o lay_v on_o the_o stool_n he_o sit_v on_o the_o basin_n he_o wash_v in_o be_v unclean_a the_o company_n he_o keep_v yea_o he_o that_o lay_v his_o finger_n on_o that_o the_o leper_n have_v touch_v be_v unclean_a also_o which_o set_v forth_o the_o spiritual_a leprosy_n of_o our_o soul_n through_o sin_n and_o that_o all_o the_o creature_n whereon_o man_n lay_v his_o hand_n or_o where_o on_o he_o sleep_v yea_o or_o whereon_o he_o look_v be_v pollute_v and_o defile_v through_o his_o uncleanness_n so_o as_o whether_o we_o look_v above_o we_o or_o about_o we_o to_o heaven_n or_o to_o earth_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n or_o on_o the_o left_a before_o we_o or_o behind_o we_o or_o round_o about_o we_o we_o can_v not_o but_o behold_v god_n great_a but_o yet_o his_o just_a severity_n and_o vengeance_n for_o our_o transgression_n in_o adam_n who_o will_v not_o exempt_v the_o poor_a creature_n from_o his_o stroke_n which_o as_o we_o may_v say_v be_v in_o themselves_o harmless_a and_o innocent_a and_o this_o well_o weigh_v shall_v make_v we_o sigh_v and_o groan_v and_o mourn_v and_o cry_v for_o our_o sin_n that_o cause_v then_o so_o heavy_a a_o curse_n as_o have_v ever_o since_o cause_v the_o world_n to_o wear_v as_o it_o be_v her_o mourn_a apparel_n the_o earth_n even_o for_o the_o sin_n commit_v in_o our_o flesh_n have_v oft_o time_n her_o fruit_n ready_o ripen_v in_o her_o womb_n and_o yet_o want_v strength_n to_o be_v deliver_v be_v ei●●●r_o blast_v in_o the_o blade_n or_o not_o full_o ear_v for_o lack_n of_o the_o latter_a rain_n so_o that_o if_o our_o meditation_n be_v sanctify_v as_o they_o ought_v as_o oft_o as_o we_o see_v a_o sheep_n lead_v to_o the_o slaughter_n so_o oft_o shall_v we_o think_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o have_v deserve_v death_n better_a than_o the_o silly_a beast_n we_o be_v only_o in_o the_o sin_n and_o the_o creature_n subject_a to_o this_o vanity_n but_o through_o our_o corruption_n and_o this_o must_v make_v we_o take_v heed_n how_o we_o give_v the_o reins_n to_o our_o affection_n which_o will_v soon_o overrun_v and_o corrupt_v our_o religion_n for_o if_o god_n be_v so_o deep_o displease_v with_o sin_n when_o it_o come_v alone_o into_o the_o world_n how_o do_v we_o urge_v and_o provoke_v he_o to_o wrath_n in_o these_o day_n that_o bring_v forth_o so_o many_o new_a invent_a sin_n that_o the_o dragon_n draw_v not_o now_o with_o his_o tail_n the_o three_o part_n as_o he_o do_v revel_v 12.4_o but_o even_o all_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n after_o he_o there_o scarce_o be_v any_o sound_a professor_n to_o be_v find_v that_o either_o poison_v not_o his_o religion_n with_o a_o opinion_n of_o indifferency_n or_o mingle_v it_o not_o with_o so_o much_o fear_n of_o man_n as_o he_o be_v far_o short_a of_o that_o zeal_n that_o the_o lord_n require_v of_o they_o that_o be_v worshipper_n of_o
but_o prune_v our_o feather_n the_o more_o easy_o to_o fly_v towards_o our_o abide_a city_n for_o if_o neither_o the_o weight_n of_o corruption_n though_o it_o sore_o press_v we_o nor_o the_o violence_n of_o affliction_n though_o it_o sound_o beat_v we_o can_v separat_fw-la we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n 5.23_o job_n 5.23_o nor_o the_o league_n with_o his_o creature_n nay_o if_o this_o mass_n of_o sin_n and_o storm_n of_o sorrow_n we_o sustain_v be_v the_o most_o sensible_a motive_n to_o draw_v we_o under_o christ_n cover_v and_o live_v here_o as_o sin_v faint_v though_o sanctify_a and_o as_o crucify_a saint_n though_o belove_a we_o have_v yet_o but_o our_o joy_n eclipse_v 1●_n 2._o cor._n 13_o 1●_n and_o that_o beauty_n of_o blessedness_n set_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o a_o counterfeit_n which_o shall_v clear_o hereafter_o be_v discover_v into_o what_o profound_a vanity_n be_v we_o fall_v if_o we_o will_v still_o be_v hedge_v in_o and_o enthral_a in_o this_o vale_n of_o misery_n and_o mortality_n and_o not_o desire_v to_o ascend_v on_o that_o ladder_n which_o jacob_n know_v to_o be_v the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n 28.17_o gen._n 28.17_o the_o skirt_n whereof_o but_o see_v and_o feel_v of_o the_o apostle_n do_v leave_v they_o in_o such_o a_o slumber_n of_o delight_n as_o they_o only_o vaunt_a in_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n 4.24_o act._n 4.24_o which_o be_v their_o preservative_n against_o the_o fear_n and_o infection_n of_o be_v fold_v up_o with_o the_o worm_n and_o their_o spur_n and_o preparative_n to_o set_v the_o house_n of_o their_o heart_n in_o order_n before_o they_o descend_v to_o the_o dust_n most_o comfortable_a persuasion_n &_o instruction_n tend_v to_o this_o purpose_n shall_v be_v find_v disperse_v and_o sprinkle_v in_o this_o treatise_n follow_v into_o which_o who_o so_o shall_v walk_v for_o religious_a recreation_n if_o he_o can_v furnish_v himself_o with_o joseph_n store_n to_o serve_v egypt_n and_o other_o country_n 17.15_o gen._n 42.6_o 1._o king_n 17.15_o yet_o can_v be_v not_o fail_v of_o the_o widow_n store_n that_o have_v to_o feed_v herself_o &_o eliah_n for_o from_o hence_o may_v be_v observe_v that_o the_o foolishness_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v prescribe_v the_o best_a direction_n to_o a_o bless_a end_n 1.27_o 1._o cor._n 1.27_o that_o the_o poverty_n of_o a_o christian_a do_v forerun_v the_o riches_n which_o he_o have_v in_o heaven_n that_o the_o love_n of_o the_o world_n be_v a_o exemption_n from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n 5.17_o mat._n 5.3_o james_n 4.4_o luk._n 16.13_o job_n 5.17_o and_o that_o the_o lord_n correction_n be_v but_o love_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_n shall_v be_v discern_v that_o the_o eloquence_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v like_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o lapwing_n that_o train_v we_o further_a from_o that_o we_o seek_v that_o the_o pomp_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v like_o a_o blaze_a star_n that_o dread_v the_o mind_n by_o presage_a ruin_n that_o the_o temptation_n to_o pleasure_n be_v like_o candied_a wormwood_n that_o cozen_v the_o taste_n and_o kill_v the_o stomach_n and_o that_o the_o schedule_n of_o our_o day_n be_v sum_v up_o be_v like_o a_o large_a debt_n set_v down_o in_o golden_a letter_n these_o thing_n to_o a_o moderate_a and_o mortify_a mind_n season_v with_o the_o fear_n and_o seat_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n can_v but_o be_v welcome_a though_o with_o the_o covetous_a and_o carnal_a man_n that_o have_v his_o desire_n like_o the_o mole_n scrape_v in_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v fare_v as_o christ_n do_v among_o the_o cadarens_n 5.17_o mark_v 5.17_o who_o be_v entreat_v to_o depart_v from_o they_o when_o he_o be_v but_o come_v near_o they_o howbeit_o in_o these_o desperate_a disease_a time_n wherein_o we_o be_v all_o so_o universallie_o drink_v with_o our_o own_o conceit_n as_o we_o despise_v to_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n some_o yoke_a religion_n with_o policy_n as_o if_o they_o be_v grape_n of_o the_o same_o vintage_n some_o trample_n down_o religion_n with_o profaneness_n as_o if_o she_o wear_v a_o weed_n that_o overgrew_n the_o corn_n some_o disguise_a religion_n with_o hypocrisy_n as_o if_o she_o be_v a_o garment_n of_o diverse_a colour_n some_o poison_a religion_n with_o popery_n as_o if_o the_o immortal_a seed_n of_o god_n can_v be_v leaven_a with_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o few_o lay_v religion_n to_o the_o heart_n which_o simple_o embrace_v and_o sincere_o follow_v will_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o square_a and_o level_a of_o our_o life_n it_o be_v good_a we_o get_v as_o many_o buttress_n as_o we_o can_v to_o uphold_v the_o building_n and_o raise_v as_o many_o bulwark_n as_o we_o can_v to_o beat_v back_o the_o shot_n that_o satan_n show_v himself_o more_o sharp_a witted_a and_o if_o it_o may_v be_v more_o spiteful_o mind_v then_o before_o in_o lay_v new_a kind_n of_o allurement_n to_o surprise_v our_o faith_n and_o subvert_v our_o hope_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o grope_v after_o our_o life_n which_o be_v hide_v in_o christ_n we_o may_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a with_o fresh_a and_o new_a supply_n of_o skill_n and_o cunning_n unwind_v ourselves_o out_o of_o his_o enuenimed_a snare_n and_o hold_v fast_o our_o profession_n which_o be_v a_o school_n of_o chastisement_n for_o a_o time_n that_o in_o our_o peace_n at_o the_o last_o we_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n holiness_n 12.10_o heb._n 12.10_o 〈◊〉_d ●●ue_n therefore_o presume_v though_o unable_a of_o myself_o to_o carry_v the_o least_o stick_n to_o the_o altar_n and_o unworthy_a of_o all_o other_o since_o low_a of_o the_o form_n to_o offer_v either_o diet_n or_o direction_n to_o any_o that_o have_v touch_v but_o the_o hem_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v teach_v a_o receipt_n which_o careful_o apply_v will_v purify_v the_o head_n from_o profane_a humour_n strengthen_v the_o heart_n against_o vain_a terror_n and_o cleanse_v the_o conscience_n from_o that_o accurse_a guile_n of_o spirit_n 32.2.3_o psal_n 32.2.3_o whereby_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o lessen_v sin_n i_o have_v presume_v no_o long_o to_o suppress_v the_o quintessence_n of_o his_o skill_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v but_o shadow_v with_o your_o allowance_n to_o send_v it_o forth_o not_o so_o full_a and_o hearty_a a_o medicine_n i_o confess_v as_o it_o may_v have_v be_v from_o the_o immediate_a hand_n of_o he_o that_o make_v it_o the_o man_n you_o know_v and_o this_o iron_n and_o ireful_a age_n that_o frown_v most_o on_o they_o that_o be_v free_a from_o profaneness_n can_v not_o but_o approve_v he_o to_o be_v zealous_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n painful_a in_o his_o call_n faithful_a in_o his_o message_n powerful_a in_o his_o speech_n careful_a of_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n peaceable_a and_o blameless_a in_o his_o life_n and_o comfortable_a and_o constant_a in_o his_o death_n so_o as_o if_o there_o appear_v any_o scar_n or_o blemish_n in_o the_o work_n it_o come_v by_o pass_v through_o my_o finger_n that_o carry_v my_o pen_n too_o slow_o and_o attend_v the_o voice_n too_o slight_o howbeit_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o proof_n and_o experience_n of_o your_o favour_n towards_o who_o chief_o i_o have_v set_v my_o bias_n that_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o be_v no_o severe_a examiner_n but_o mild_a peruser_n of_o these_o paper_n and_o that_o affection_n may_v somewhat_o mediate_v with_o your_o judgement_n to_o censure_v not_o as_o you_o see_v but_o as_o i_o mean_v i_o have_v adventure_v the_o hazard_n to_o be_v reprove_v of_o other_o upon_o assure_a confidence_n to_o be_v accept_v of_o you_o and_o though_o many_o may_v happy_o balk_v the_o alley_n and_o not_o lend_v their_o eye_n to_o behold_v the_o jar_n between_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n upon_o opinion_n that_o myself_o have_v leap_v beyond_o my_o last_o in_o strive_v to_o bring_v this_o boat_n to_o land_n which_o the_o owner_n never_o mean_v shall_v see_v the_o shore_n yet_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v like_o the_o rain_n 11.13_o heb._n 6.7_o mark_n 11.13_o and_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n like_o the_o earth_n that_o if_o the_o tree_n answer_v not_o her_o fruit_n her_o leaf_n will_v not_o protect_v she_o from_o the_o fire_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v short_a in_o his_o account_n of_o faith_n 10.14_o rom._n 10.14_o that_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o hear_v and_o that_o if_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o preacher_n perish_v in_o the_o air_n or_o in_o the_o ear_n it_o shall_v quicken_v again_o to_o question_v with_o we_o for_o our_o negligence_n i_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o humble_v myself_o to_o other_o view_n that_o by_o the_o mercy_n see_v on_o i_o who_o have_v be_v thus_o far_o lead_v into_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n 19.13_o exod._n 19.13_o they_o may_v be_v likewise_o
that_o he_o be_v able_a by_o his_o power_n to_o disappoint_v the_o decree_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o atheist_n to_o challenge_v absolute_a dominion_n upon_o the_o earth_n think_v god_n to_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o sit_v there_o laugh_v they_o to_o scorn_v for_o herod_n think_v to_o have_v have_v the_o life_n of_o the_o babe_n but_o the_o babe_n have_v his_o when_z the_o measure_n of_o his_o sin_n be_v fulfil_v for_o the_o second_o general_a point_n which_o be_v the_o obedience_n of_o joseph_n learn_v how_o willing_o he_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n he_o may_v have_v think_v himself_o a_o miserable_a man_n to_o have_v marry_v such_o a_o wife_n as_o he_o may_v not_o accompany_v with_o and_o the_o babe_n which_o be_v bear_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o these_o unseasonable_a trouble_n for_o these_o no_o doubt_n be_v the_o suggestion_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o he_o lay_v aside_o consult_v with_o the_o old_a man_n and_o fix_v his_o eye_n upon_o god_n and_o cast_v his_o care_n upon_o the_o high_a that_o as_o he_o have_v give_v the_o temptation_n so_o he_o know_v he_o will_v likewise_o give_v the_o issue_n like_o abraham_n gen._n 22.8_o who_o answer_v his_o son_n say_v god_n will_v provide_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o like_o this_o babe_n himself_o who_o afterward_o in_o his_o conflict_n of_o death_n mark_n 14.36_o though_o most_o tedious_a and_o grievous_a to_o the_o flesh_n do_v yet_o submit_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n will_n so_o as_o the_o obedience_n of_o joseph_n be_v here_o commend_v by_o this_o that_o he_o present_o dispatch_v not_o stand_n reason_n with_o the_o angel_n nor_o wait_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o day_n for_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n negligent_o he_o know_v this_o babe_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n can_v not_o murder_v he_o as_o yet_o because_o he_o have_v a_o work_n to_o do_v for_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n yet_o see_v there_o be_v at_o this_o time_n no_o other_o door_n of_o escape_n but_o fly_v he_o be_v neither_o negligent_a nor_o careless_a but_o he_o account_v all_o haste_n too_o little_a and_o in_o the_o night_n truss_v up_o all_o he_o have_v whereby_o we_o may_v think_v he_o be_v exceed_v poor_a and_o make_v no_o delay_n where_o we_o learn_v that_o though_o we_o be_v sure_o the_o lord_n will_v defend_v we_o yet_o if_o we_o be_v in_o danger_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v open_v a_o window_n for_o our_o deliverance_n that_o we_o use_v all_o possible_a dispatch_n david_n be_v sure_a saul_n can_v not_o surprise_v he_o because_o the_o lord_n have_v promse_v he_o the_o kingdom_n yet_o 1._o sam._n 24.1_o he_o hide_v himself_o in_o cave_n and_o fly_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o to_o avoid_v his_o fury_n because_o though_o he_o have_v god_n oath_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v king_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o tempt_v god_n by_o expose_v himself_o to_o danger_n so_o joseph_n though_o he_o have_v the_o babe_n of_o life_n in_o his_o hand_n yet_o fly_v which_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o no_o distrust_n but_o of_o singular_a obedience_n because_o he_o be_v will_v so_o to_o do_v for_o the_o three_o point_n which_o be_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n the_o prophet_n osea_n ch_n 11.1_o after_o he_o have_v set_v down_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o have_v bring_v in_o god_n threaten_v they_o with_o his_o judgement_n and_o with_o this_o judgement_n as_o the_o great_a that_o he_o will_v distinguish_v the_o light_n of_o israel_n by_o take_v away_o his_o son_n which_o be_v their_o glory_n than_o he_o be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o comfort_v they_o again_o after_o this_o sort_n that_o although_o they_o have_v be_v rebellious_a who_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v in_o his_o covenant_n though_o they_o have_v not_o profit_v by_o his_o correction_n and_o though_o it_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o lord_n justice_n to_o deprive_v they_o utter_o of_o his_o son_n yet_o forasmuch_o as_o israel_n be_v his_o child_n though_o he_o have_v send_v his_o son_n into_o egypt_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v consider_v their_o own_o unwoorthinesse_n yet_o for_o his_o mere_a mercy_n sake_n he_o will_v bring_v he_o forth_o again_o and_o restore_v he_o unto_o they_o where_o we_o learn_v first_o that_o though_o we_o break_v our_o covenant_n with_o god_n yet_o he_o be_v faithful_a that_o have_v promise_v and_o will_v never_o break_v his_o covenant_n with_o we_o for_o his_o thought_n be_v not_o like_o our_o thought_n but_o he_o be_v the_o same_o for_o ever_o howbeit_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v bear_v we_o in_o his_o arm_n as_o he_o do_v ephraim_n osea_n 11.3_o and_o lead_v we_o with_o the_o band_n of_o love_n 1.17_o jam._n 1.17_o if_o he_o take_v the_o yoke_n from_o our_o jaw_n and_o yet_o we_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v by_o who_o we_o be_v heal_v and_o in_o who_o we_o be_v ease_v we_o shall_v wander_v in_o the_o desert_n of_o our_o own_o lust_n and_o languish_v as_o it_o be_v in_o torment_n of_o conscience_n before_o the_o lord_n will_v unfold_v the_o brightness_n of_o his_o sun_n and_o discover_v the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n unto_o us._n for_o though_o christ_n shall_v be_v call_v out_o of_o egypt_n at_o the_o last_o yet_o many_o sorrow_n shall_v run_v over_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o israelite_n before_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o second_o in_o this_o pprophecy_n observe_v that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o thing_n show_v shall_v come_v to_o christ_n which_o be_v base_a but_o it_o be_v foretell_v before_o that_o when_o it_o come_v it_o may_v not_o seem_v strange_a nor_o man_n may_v not_o be_v offend_v at_o it_o as_o here_o be_v foretell_v his_o fly_n into_o egypt_n and_o his_o baseness_n that_o no_o man_n will_v vouchsafe_v to_o look_v upon_o he_o be_v foretell_v by_o esay_n chap._n 53.2_o so_o be_v it_o foretell_v that_o not_o many_o mighty_a or_o noble_a shall_v be_v call_v for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v 1._o cor._n 2.8_o none_o of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n have_v know_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o base_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o may_v be_v as_o s._n paul_n call_v they_o 1._o cor._n 4.10_o fool_n for_o christ_n his_o sake_n so_o be_v it_o foretell_v that_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n there_o shall_v be_v scarce_o faith_n find_v upon_o the_o earth_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v 1._o tim._n 4.1_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v discourage_v with_o the_o profaneness_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o we_o may_v labour_v to_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o fool_n to_o who_o the_o riches_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v reveal_v and_o in_o the_o company_n of_o those_o few_o who_o lamp_n shall_v be_v find_v burn_v and_o who_o faith_n shall_v be_v find_v ground_v upon_o the_o persuasion_n of_o god_n love_n in_o his_o son_n math_n chap._n 2._o vers_fw-la 16_o 17_o 18_o verse_n 16_o then_o herod_n see_v that_o he_o be_v mock_v of_o the_o wiseman_n be_v exceed_v wroth_a and_o send_v forth_o and_o slay_v all_o the_o male_a child_n that_o be_v in_o bethlem_n and_o in_o all_o the_o coast_n thereof_o from_o two_o year_n old_a and_o under_o according_a to_o the_o time_n which_o he_o have_v diligent_o search_v out_o of_o the_o wiseman_n verse_n 17_o then_o be_v that_o fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremias_n say_v verse_n 18_o in_o rhama_n be_v a_o voice_n hear_v mourn_a and_o weep_v and_o great_a howl_n rachel_n weep_v for_o her_o child_n and_o will_v not_o be_v comfort_v because_o they_o be_v not_o now_o follow_v the_o persecution_n itself_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o angel_n be_v like_o a_o flash_n of_o lightning_n before_o a_o clap_n of_o thunder_n wherein_o the_o evangelist_n deliver_v three_o general_a point_n first_o by_o what_o occasion_n herod_n be_v so_o set_v on_o fire_n and_o exasperate_v to_o beethinke_v himself_o of_o these_o murder_n namely_o because_o he_o think_v himself_o abuse_v second_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o massacre_n with_o the_o circumstance_n first_o of_o the_o place_n it_o be_v in_o bethlem_n and_o the_o town_n adjoin_v to_o it_o second_o of_o the_o person_n they_o be_v child_n of_o two_o year_n old_a and_o under_o three_o the_o evangelist_n note_v the_o fulfil_n of_o a_o pprophecy_n ancient_o foretell_v that_o this_o come_n to_o pass_v they_o may_v know_v it_o be_v no_o small_a matter_n and_o withal_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v send_v not_o to_o reign_v as_o a_o monarch_n but_o to_o be_v persecute_v unto_o blood_n for_o the_o first_o herod_n think_v himself_o mock_v not_o that_o he_o be_v so_o but_o only_o deem_v himself_o so_o where_o
word_n in_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n shall_v go_v before_o the_o seal_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v necessary_a yet_o be_v it_o a_o sacrament_n though_o there_o be_v no_o preach_v and_o the_o want_n of_o the_o word_n do_v not_o abolish_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o action_n so_o we_o must_v labour_v that_o all_o thing_n that_o savour_n of_o corruption_n may_v be_v remove_v yet_o not_o to_o sever_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o some_o abuse_n and_o here_o those_o be_v confute_v that_o will_v submit_v themselves_o to_o some_o commandment_n and_o not_o to_o other_o we_o think_v no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o baptism_n if_o he_o contemn_v it_o and_o why_o do_v th●●_n not_o aswell_o labour_v to_o have_v thy_o child_n nurture_v up_o in_o faith_n and_o religion_n no_o man_n will_v come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n without_o examination_n for_o if_o he_o do_v we_o account_v it_o damnable_a or_o who_o be_v he_o that_o take_v the_o bread_n in_o the_o supper_n will_v be_v find_v asleep_a yet_o we_o thrust_v ourselves_o into_o the_o temple_n to_o hear_v the_o lord_n speak_v unto_o we_o not_o commune_v with_o our_o heart_n before_o we_o come_v and_o suffer_a o●●_n self_n to_o be_v catch_v with_o sleep_n when_o we_o be_v come_v and_o whence_o proceed_v this_o but_o that_o we_o do_v not_o esteem_v it_o as_o righteous_a as_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o come_v to_o the_o doctrine_n with_o preparation_n as_o to_o the_o sacrament_n certain_a it_o be_v many_o may_v be_v save_v without_o bptisme_n but_o be_v baptize_v and_o despise_v preach_v if_o he_o may_v have_v it_o he_o be_v sure_a to_o be_v damn_v for_o what_o be_v the_o seal_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o grant_n precedent_n but_o we_o be_v almost_o like_a unto_o the_o pharisee_n that_o think_v it_o no_o sin_n to_o swear_v by_o the_o altar_n but_o to_o swear_v by_o the_o oblation_n on_o the_o altar_n be_v a_o heinous_a matter_n so_o to_o swear_v by_o the_o temple_n it_o be_v nothing_o 23.18_o math._n 23.18_o but_o otherwise_o to_o swear_v by_o the_o gold_n in_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v most_o strange_a since_o the_o gold_n be_v nothing_o unless_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o temple_n so_o the_o word_n do_v separate_v and_o sanctify_v the_o water_n and_o the_o bread_n and_o not_o they_o the_o word_n for_o it_o have_v life_n without_o they_o and_o who_o teach_v they_o to_o distinguish_v thus_o for_o if_o we_o will_v all_o go_v to_o john_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o so_o must_v we_o also_o to_o hear_v he_o preach_v let_v we_o beware_v therefore_o how_o we_o leap_v at_o a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n 13.8_o joh._n 13.8_o peter_n will_v as_o fain_o be_v cleanse_v as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n then_o must_v he_o not_o be_v so_o nice_a as_o to_o deny_v this_o mercy_n to_o himself_o to_o have_v christ_n wash_v his_o foot_n but_o as_o we_o must_v measure_v every_o thing_n by_o the_o commandment_n so_o must_v we_o likewise_o esteem_v they_o according_a to_o the_o dignity_n and_o order_n that_o god_n have_v command_v for_o this_o shall_v be_v the_o best_a fulfil_n of_o righteousness_n and_o jesus_n when_o he_o be_v baptize_v etc._n etc._n here_o the_o evangelist_n set_v down_o what_o follow_v immediate_o after_o christ_n baptise_v namely_o the_o ordain_v of_o he_o by_o a_o heavenly_a oracle_n to_o be_v the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v many_o glorious_a sight_n and_o apparition_n whereby_o be_v testify_v to_o john_n and_o the_o people_n that_o this_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a man_n by_o open_v the_o heaven_n must_v be_v understand_v that_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v cut_v asunder_o that_o thereby_o they_o may_v know_v that_o this_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o in_o the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n but_o as_o one_o come_v from_o heaven_n further_o john_n and_o the_o people_n see_v with_o their_o bodily_a eye_n the_o bodily_a shape_n of_o a_o dove_n by_o which_o be_v represent_v sacramental_o a_o extraordinary_a presence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o though_o it_o be_v every_o where_o and_o so_o can_v be_v limit_v any_o where_o yet_o be_v it_o never_o so_o much_o present_v any_o where_o as_o in_o this_o place_n whereby_o be_v signify_v the_o perfuse_v and_o pour_v of_o all_o gift_n and_o grace_n upon_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o after_o their_o sight_n have_v be_v thus_o confirm_v yet_o be_v there_o a_o more_o excellent_a sign_n a_o voice_n from_o the_o live_a god_n that_o this_o man_n and_o this_o person_n that_o stand_v before_o they_o aggrevate_n and_o gather_v himself_o among_o the_o company_n of_o sinner_n this_o poor_a man_n appear_v but_o in_o the_o baseness_n of_o this_o flesh_n be_v the_o very_a natural_a son_n of_o god_n beget_v by_o a_o incomprehensible_a generation_n in_o who_o his_o soul_n delight_v so_o as_o the_o sum_n be_v this_o there_o be_v testimony_n give_v from_o heaven_n to_o john_n and_o the_o people_n by_o sight_n and_o by_o hear_v that_o this_o man_n that_o be_v but_o new_o baptize_v be_v the_o only_a and_o alone_a peacemaker_n of_o the_o church_n the_o testimony_n be_v three_o first_o the_o open_n of_o the_o heaven_n second_o the_o descend_v of_o the_o dove_n three_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o voice_n for_o the_o first_o understand_v that_o albeit_o christ_n have_v the_o heaven_n open_v in_o part_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n that_o he_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o great_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n who_o in_o his_o humanity_n have_v need_n of_o such_o a_o confirmation_n and_o that_o in_o part_n they_o be_v open_v to_o give_v he_o security_n to_o undergo_v this_o great_a office_n yet_o it_o be_v do_v especial_o for_o the_o confirm_v of_o john_n and_o the_o people_n as_o joh._n 12._o a_o voice_n come_v from_o heaven_n say_v i_o have_v glorify_v he_o which_o come_v say_v christ_n vers_fw-la 30._o not_o for_o i_o but_o for_o your_o sake_n so_o as_o hereby_o general_o observe_v in_o that_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_v to_o authorise_v he_o to_o be_v the_o great_a teacher_n that_o our_o duty_n be_v to_o hear_v he_o and_o the_o great_a shall_v our_o condemnation_n be_v if_o we_o do_v it_o not_o for_o though_o other_o speak_v by_o commission_n from_o god_n as_o john_n and_o the_o prophet_n yet_o this_o be_v true_a speak_v of_o in_o the_o hebrew_n that_o if_o they_o go_v not_o unpunished_a that_o despise_v they_o that_o speak_v from_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v be_v but_o man_n much_o less_o shall_v they_o escape_v that_o despise_v he_o who_o speak_v from_o heaven_n and_o since_o the_o prophet_n luk._n 16.29_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v and_o john_n speak_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n much_o more_o be_v we_o to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o neglect_v not_o the_o word_n of_o this_o great_a teacher_n that_o speak_v from_o heaven_n be_v god_n in_o flesh_n for_o the_o second_o testimony_n first_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o jesus_n be_v destitute_a of_o this_o spirit_n before_o and_o if_o not_o why_o it_o be_v say_v now_o to_o light_v on_o he_o 9_o colos_n 2_o 9_o it_o be_v certain_a as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o the_o god_n head_n dwell_v bodily_a in_o his_o flesh_n and_o never_o any_o creature_n have_v so_o much_o as_o he_o from_o the_o first_o moment_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o in_o that_o it_o seem_v now_o to_o descend_v upon_o he_o understand_v that_o before_o he_o lead_v a_o private_a life_n and_o the_o time_n of_o his_o manifestation_n be_v not_o come_v at_o this_o time_n he_o abstain_v from_o show_v any_o work_n of_o his_o mediatorship_n and_o in_o this_o private_a course_n of_o life_n he_o have_v such_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o be_v meet_v but_o now_o when_o he_o be_v to_o exercise_v his_o office_n he_o have_v his_o soul_n endue_v with_o a_o more_o excellent_a measure_n of_o grace_n hereupon_o it_o be_v say_v esa_n 61.1_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n come_v upon_o i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n etc._n etc._n come_v then_o in_o a_o special_a manner_n upon_o he_o where_o we_o learn_v that_o as_o christ_n in_o the_o lineament_n and_o proportion_n of_o his_o body_n grow_v and_o increase_v so_o do_v he_o also_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o inward_a virtue_n as_o luk._n 2.52_o he_o increase_v in_o wisdom_n and_o in_o stature_n and_o in_o favour_n both_o with_o god_n and_o man_n and_o howsoever_o he_o have_v by_o right_o appertain_v to_o he_o all_o grace_n yet_o it_o be_v pour_v down_o by_o degree_n and_o the_o great_a measure_n of_o all_o be_v at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o ascension_n the_o grace_n he_o have_v receive_v be_v far_o above_o
beget_v beam_n from_o th●●_n sun_n and_o the_o beam_n proceed_v light_a the_o beam_n can_v be●●_n without_o the_o sun_n nor_o the_o light_n without_o they_o both_o so_o fro●_n the_o spring_n rise_v the_o well_o head_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o spring_n without_o th●●_n well_o head_n and_o the_o stream_n proceed_v from_o they_o both_o these_o 〈◊〉_d step_n and_o trace_n as_o it_o be_v to_o conceive_v somewhat_o of_o this_o mystery_n of_o mystery_n last_o observe_v as_o the_o whole_a trinity_n be_v present_a at_o c●●●●_n baptism_n the_o father_n to_o justify_v his_o son_n the_o spirit_n to_o sa●●_n he_o and_o christ_n to_o be_v sanctify_v so_o be_v they_o also_o present_v 〈◊〉_d baptism_n god_n the_o father_n to_o receive_v we_o christ_n to_o purcha●en_n for_o we_o &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o purge_v our_o conscience_n yea_o and_o the_o heaven_n be_v open_a that_o be_v we_o be_v as_o sure_a to_o come_v thither_o as_o we_o be_v sure_a christ_n be_v there_o therefore_o be_v the_o whole_a congregation_n bind_v to_o stay_v the_o set_n on_o of_o this_o seal_n and_o to_o see_v the_o child_n receive_v into_o the_o church_n since_o there_o be_v such_o a_o glorious_a presence_n at_o it_o and_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v meditate_a upon_o when_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o other_o math_n chap._n 4._o vers_fw-la 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o etc._n etc._n verse_n 1_o then_o be_v jesus_n lead_v aside_o of_o the_o spirit_n into_o the_o wilderness_n to_o be_v tempt_v of_o the_o devil_n verse_n 2_o and_o when_o he_o have_v fast_v forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n he_o be_v afterward_o hungry_a verse_n 3_o then_o come_v to_o he_o the_o tempter_n and_o say_v if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n command_n that_o these_o stone_n be_v make_v bread_n verse_n 4_o but_o he_o answer_v say_v it_o be_v write_v man_n shall_v not_o live_v by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n verse_n 5_o then_o the_o devil_n take_v he_o up_o into_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o set_v he_o on_o a_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n verse_n 6_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o thou_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n cast_v thyself_o down_o for_o it_o be_v write_v that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v over_o thou_o and_o with_o their_o hand_n they_o shall_v lift_v thou_o up_o lest_o at_o any_o time_n thou_o shall_v dash_v thy_o foot_n against_o a_o stone_n verse_n 7_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o it_o be_v write_v again_o thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n verse_n 8_o again_o the_o devil_n take_v he_o up_o into_o a_o exceed_a high_a mountain_n and_o show_v he_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o they_o verse_n 9_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o all_o these_o will_v i_o give_v th●●_n if_o thou_o will_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v i_o verse_n 10_o then_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o avoid_v satan_n for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n &_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o ser●●_n verse_n 11_o then_o the_o devil_n leave_v he_o and_o behold_v the_o angel_n come_v and_o minister_v unto_o he_o now_o the_o evangelist_n further_o show_v that_o because_o the_o time_n be_v near_a when_o our_o saviour_n christ_n be_v to_o enter_v into_o his_o office_n to_o which_o he_o be_v before_o consecrate_v that_o it_o be_v ordain_v by_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n immediate_o before_o that_o he_o shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o be_v exercise_v in_o a_o hot_a conflict_n challenge_v satan_n hand_n to_o hand_n that_o overcome_v in_o this_o first_o and_o great_a combat_n he_o himself_o may_v be_v consume_v and_o other_o may_v know_v that_o he_o come_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o satan_n may_v have_v the_o great_a power_n and_o full_a blow_n at_o he_o he_o be_v lead_v into_o a_o solitary_a and_o desert_a place_n where_o the_o devil_n may_v be_v in_o his_o ruff_n and_o to_o such_o a_o place_n wherein_o man_n possess_v be_v special_o torment_v and_o there_o christ_n live_v among_o wild_a beast_n as_o mark_n say_v chap._n 1.13_o that_o satan_n may_v do_v his_o uttermost_a and_o forasmuch_o as_o moses_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o law_n exod._n 34.28_o be_v take_v up_o into_o a_o mount_n to_o god_n and_o be_v take_v from_o man_n where_o he_o abstain_v from_o meat_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n that_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o doctrine_n may_v receive_v the_o great_a grace_n and_o may_v further_o be_v authorise_v and_o forasmuch_o as_o eliah_n 1._o king_n 19.8_o in_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o law_n deface_v in_o the_o idolatrous_a reign_n of_o ahab_n do_v go_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o one_o cake_n and_o a_o pot_n of_o water_n forty_o day_n and_o forty_o night_n so_o here_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v publish_v it_o be_v meet_v that_o christ_n shall_v do_v no_o less_o lest_o there_o may_v be_v think_v some_o disparagement_n do_v and_o less_o glory_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o law_n be_v write_v but_o in_o stone_n and_o to_o endure_v but_o a_o time_n shall_v be_v adorn_v and_o beautify_v with_o a_o great_a miracle_n than_o the_o gospel_n which_o shall_v be_v write_v in_o the_o live_a stone_n of_o man_n heart_n howbeit_o in_o this_o christ_n give_v we_o no_o example_n of_o abstinence_n for_o he_o fast_v because_o he_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o stomach_n all_o that_o while_n which_o be_v to_o confirm_v we_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n mere_o supernatural_a be_v able_a to_o forbear_v without_o a●●_n appetite_n forty_o day_n during_o which_o time_n the_o devil_n set_v upon_o he_o and_o he_o be_v not_o free_a from_o this_o encounter_n any_o while_n but_o after_o beginning_n to_o be_v hungry_a than_o the_o devil_n more_o furious_o assault_v he_o hope_v to_o work_v and_o prevail_v somewhat_o upon_o this_o occasion_n of_o his_o infirmity_n whereupon_o follow_v three_o several_a temptation_n which_o in_o their_o place_n shall_v be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o word_n be_v set_v down_o three_o point_n first_o saint_n matthew_n diligent_o deliver_v all_o such_o circumstance_n as_o go_v before_o his_o temptation_n second_o what_o these_o temptation_n be_v both_o in_o number_n and_o in_o kind_a after_o he_o grow_v hungry_a from_o the_o three_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o ten_o verse_n three_o the_o event_n and_o issue_n of_o this_o assault_n that_o when_o he_o have_v repulse_v the_o rage_n and_o drive_v back_o the_o dart_n of_o his_o enemy_n the_o angel_n come_v to_o do_v he_o homage_n as_o to_o a_o great_a and_o mighty_a conqueror_n for_o the_o circumstance_n before_o the_o combat_n they_o be_v five_o first_o be_v note_v the_o time_n then_o that_o be_v immediate_o after_o he_o have_v receive_v testimony_n from_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n second_o the_o place_n where_o this_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n a_o place_n most_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o satan_n three_o by_o what_o motion_n he_o be_v carry_v thither_o by_o the_o direction_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o before_o descend_v on_o he_o four_o to_o what_o end_n he_o go_v namely_o to_o be_v tempt_v five_o the_o occasion_n satan_n take_v more_o special_o ta_o assault_n he_o which_o be_v his_o fast_n and_o hunger_n for_o the_o first_o when_o he_o be_v solemn_o pronounce_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o he_o be_v full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o the_o devil_n set_v upon_o he_o while_o he_o live_v a_o private_a life_n and_o keep_v himself_o close_o and_o within_o his_o compass_n he_o assay_v not_o to_o assault_v he_o but_o when_o he_o be_v to_o execute_v a_o matter_n and_o work_v of_o his_o office_n concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n and_o that_o this_o be_v now_o to_o be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o miracle_n and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v to_o be_v extinguish_v and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o man_n conscience_n now_o he_o begin_v to_o challenge_v he_o where_o learn_v that_o the_o same_o which_o befall_v to_o the_o head_n the_o member_n be_v not_o exempt_v from_o especial_o such_o as_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v instrument_n for_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o gospel_n when_o moses_n live_v private_a and_o show_v not_o himself_o to_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o quarrel_n but_o when_o he_o see_v one_o of_o his_o brethren_n suffer_v wrong_a and_o defend_v he_o and_o avenge_v his_o quarrel_n that_o have_v the_o harm_n do_v to_o he_o and_o smite_v the_o egyptian_a act._n 7.25_o than_o they_o begin_v to_o disgrace_v he_o and_o he_o be_v
the_o tower_n of_o babel_n shall_v have_v be_v erect_v to_o they_o and_o as_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o pull_v god_n out_o of_o his_o throne_n as_o to_o disgrace_v we_o further_o than_o he_o permit_v for_o our_o salvation_n be_v as_o sure_a as_o his_o own_o seat_n and_o as_o steadfast_a as_o if_o ourselves_o have_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o see_v it_o write_v with_o god_n own_o singer_n yea_o we_o shall_v stand_v like_o mount_n zion_n 125.1_o psal_n 125.1_o and_o not_o a_o feather_n of_o a_o bird_n much_o more_o not_o the_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n nor_o the_o hem_n of_o our_o garment_n shall_v be_v touch_v or_o fall_v without_o his_o appointment_n wherefore_o satan_n sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o labour_v to_o seduce_v the_o faithful_a who_o he_o know_v he_o can_v stir_v and_o when_o he_o know_v we_o can_v fall_v final_o since_o the_o angel_n have_v charge_n over_o we_o and_o can_v but_o be_v faithful_a keeper_n of_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o they_o and_o herein_o may_v we_o embrace_v the_o riches_n of_o the_o lord_n mercy_n who_o when_o his_o own_o providence_n may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o secure_v we_o of_o our_o safety_n yet_o to_o relieve_v our_o infirmity_n and_o to_o support_v our_o weakness_n have_v give_v we_o the_o guard_n of_o heaven_n to_o wait_v upon_o we_o as_o if_o one_o that_o be_v to_o pass_v the_o sea_n shall_v not_o only_o have_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o prince_n for_o his_o safe_a conduct_n but_o shall_v be_v guard_v with_o his_o royal_a nany_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o do_v that_o we_o do_v by_o the_o warrant_n of_o his_o word_n we_o shall_v neither_o be_v persecute_v nor_o molest_v but_o so_o far_o as_o he_o may_v have_v glory_n by_o it_o and_o we_o reap_v comfort_n for_o the_o three_o wherein_o he_o do_v falsify_v the_o text_n allege_v and_o this_o he_o do_v two_o way_n first_o by_o wrong_v the_o word_n second_o by_o wrest_v the_o sense_n for_o the_o psalm_n 91.11_o be_v he_o have_v give_v his_o angel_n charge_v to_o keep_v thou_o in_o thy_o way_n so_o as_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v with_o a_o limitation_n that_o he_o keep_v he_o in_o his_o way_n now_o from_o the_o pinnacle_n of_o the_o temple_n to_o fall_v down_o be_v not_o the_o way_n but_o he_o leave_v out_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o truth_n thy_o way_n that_o be_v those_o way_n that_o be_v prescribe_v as_o from_o the_o temple_n to_o come_v down_o by_o the_o stair_n by_o this_o mean_n deal_v fraudulent_o leave_v out_o the_o principal_a second_o consider_v the_o wrest_n of_o the_o sense_n for_o where_o this_o be_v speak_v that_o christ_n shall_v depend_v upon_o his_o father_n providence_n walk_v in_o his_o way_n he_o labour_v to_o secure_v he_o general_o of_o the_o same_o providence_n though_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n hereby_o to_o overthrow_v he_o now_o as_o he_o deal_v with_o the_o head_n so_o he_o do_v with_o the_o member_n for_o pretend_v god_n protection_n he_o labour_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o destruction_n for_o predestination_n he_o will_v tell_v a_o man_n esau_n be_v hate_v and_o jacob_n belove_v before_o they_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n 1.3_o mal._n 1.3_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o willer_n nor_o in_o the_o runner_n neither_o in_o the_o affection_n 2.13_o phil._n 2.13_o nor_o in_o the_o action_n which_o he_o do_v only_o to_o make_v we_o rest_v in_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n predestination_n without_o have_v regard_n to_o our_o conversation_n whereas_o hereby_o we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o be_v induce_v to_o get_v as_o many_o testimony_n as_o we_o can_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o election_n pertain_v to_o we_o and_o not_o to_o wait_v till_o grace_n shall_v distil_v by_o divine_a influence_n or_o to_o make_v the_o decree_n of_o god_n a_o mean_n of_o our_o security_n to_o live_v as_o we_o listen_v as_o that_o be_v elect_v we_o can_v perish_v and_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v damn_v we_o can_v avoid_v it_o so_o for_o justification_n he_o will_v suggest_v we_o be_v save_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n only_o and_o when_o we_o have_v do_v all_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n the_o more_o we_o sin_v the_o more_o grace_n abound_v 6.1_o rom._n 6.1_o and_o god_n have_v most_o glory_n in_o pardon_v most_o offence_n whereas_o be_v elect_v we_o work_v well_o not_o to_o recompense_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n but_o to_o show_v our_o thankfulness_n and_o there_o be_v no_o promise_n where_o the_o commandment_n be_v not_o keep_v for_o this_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v on_o our_o part_n else_o god_n be_v discharge_v on_o his_o part_n for_o be_v out_o of_o our_o way_n the_o devil_n may_v take_v we_o as_o vagabond_n the_o protection_n of_o the_o lord_n not_o extend_v to_o we_o in_o this_o course_n and_o thus_o do_v satan_n almost_o labour_v to_o pervert_v all_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o may_v find_v we_o stray_v out_o of_o our_o father_n house_n as_o to_o suggest_v that_o the_o sabbath_n be_v make_v for_o man_n therefore_o he_o will_v labour_v to_o make_v we_o work_v on_o this_o day_n 2.27_o mark_n 2.27_o but_o let_v we_o not_o give_v ear_n to_o he_o for_o this_o lead_v out_o of_o the_o way_n so_o when_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o labour_v not_o for_o his_o house_n 5.8_o 2._o tim._n 5.8_o be_v worse_a than_o a_o infidel_n if_o he_o abuse_v any_o of_o we_o by_o this_o to_o covet_v after_o riches_n away_o with_o it_o for_o it_o be_v say_v in_o another_o place_n covetousness_n be_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_a and_o the_o desire_n of_o riches_n be_v simple_o unlawful_a 1._o tim._n 6.9_o for_o by_o this_o he_o fall_v into_o many_o snare_n it_o be_v write_v again_o thou_o shall_v not_o tempt_v etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o second_o general_a part_n namely_o the_o repulse_n of_o the_o temptation_n wherein_o consider_v two_o part_n first_o that_o christ_n answer_v again_o by_o scripture_n second_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o place_n be_v allege_v for_o the_o first_o we_o may_v observe_v and_o see_v it_o be_v no_o disgrace_n nor_o disparagement_n to_o the_o scripture_n to_o proceed_v from_o satan_n nor_o any_o occasion_n to_o make_v we_o leave_v our_o hold_n for_o christ_n answer_v again_o and_o strike_v with_o the_o same_o weapon_n wherewith_o he_o be_v strike_v show_v we_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o use_v a_o text_n well_o against_o they_o that_o do_v abuse_v a_o text_n and_o if_o christ_n example_n be_v our_o precedent_n than_o we_o may_v allege_v scripture_n against_o deprave_a scripture_n for_o the_o bee_n may_v gather_v honey_n on_o the_o same_o stalk_n that_o the_o spider_n do_v poison_n and_o though_o a_o swashbuckler_n kill_v a_o man_n with_o his_o weapon_n yet_o a_o soldier_n may_v lawful_o knit_v a_o sword_n to_o his_o side_n and_o though_o there_o be_v many_o piracy_n commit_v on_o the_o sea_n yet_o may_v the_o merchant_n traffic_n or_o though_o some_o surfeit_n by_o gluttony_n yet_o may_v other_o use_v their_o temperate_a diet_n and_o if_o the_o devil_n change_v himself_o into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n shall_v therefore_o the_o angel_n lose_v their_o light_n or_o shall_v paul_n therefore_o deny_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o preacher_n of_o salvation_n because_o the_o pythonite_n act._n 16.17_o speak_v it_o or_o because_o caiphas_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o devil_n joh._n 11.50_o say_v one_o shall_v die_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n must_v we_o not_o therefore_o believe_v it_o and_o though_o numb_a 22._o a_o enchanter_n wish_v that_o his_o soul_n may_v die_v the_o death_n of_o the_o righteous_a yet_o be_v it_o a_o prayer_n fit_a to_o be_v use_v of_o all_o christian_n though_o he_o sell_v his_o soul_n for_o gold_n for_o say_v he_o numb_v 24.17_o a_o star_n shall_v come_v out_o of_o juda_n a_o true_a speech_n of_o a_o false_a spirit_n and_o here_o the_o devil_n own_o mouth_n protest_v that_o god_n providence_n reach_v over_o his_o child_n which_o we_o may_v believe_v with_o comfort_n though_o it_o proceed_v from_o his_o lie_a lip_n for_o the_o second_o which_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n herein_o christ_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o he_o abuse_v the_o place_n before_o allege_v because_o he_o inforce_v the_o promise_n contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n mandement_fw-fr make_v it_o absolute_a where_o it_o be_v but_o conditional_a that_o the_o lord_n will_v protect_v he_o if_o he_o keep_v he_o in_o his_o way_n and_o for_o he_o to_o expect_v the_o promise_n if_o he_o go_v astray_o be_v mere_o to_o tempt_v god_n so_o as_o the_o devil_n by_o conceal_v that_o part_n do_v poison_n and_o adulterate_a the_o scripture_n now_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o god_n be_v tempt_v by_o man_n two_o way_n first_o when_o we_o doubt_v of_o his_o power_n use_v
do_v thy_o will_n for_o thy_o law_n be_v write_v in_o my_o heart_n and_o they_o be_v such_o of_o who_o esay_n 50.5_o say_v the_o lord_n have_v open_v their_o ear_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o rebellious_a but_o otherwise_o it_o be_v with_o the_o hypocrite_n for_o though_o their_o ear_n be_v open_v yet_o they_o be_v rebellious_a and_o though_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v in_o their_o stomach_n yet_o like_o dog_n they_o cast_v it_o up_o again_o and_o do_v not_o show_v themselves_o pliable_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o walk_v through_o dry_a place_n this_o be_v the_o second_o part_n speak_v of_o at_o first_o namely_o that_o when_o satan_n be_v go_v out_o of_o a_o man_n he_o have_v a_o restless_a kind_n of_o desire_n &_o every_o place_n be_v to_o he_o as_o a_o wilderness_n unless_o he_o may_v return_v whence_o he_o come_v for_o he_o walk_v through_o dry_a place_n that_o be_v his_o operation_n and_o power_n be_v interrupt_v in_o that_o man_n all_o other_o place_n be_v as_o irksome_a and_o unpleasant_a out_o of_o this_o general_o observe_v that_o whether_o satan_n be_v real_o cast_v out_o or_o only_o so_o dispossess_v as_o the_o power_n of_o his_o subtle_a illusion_n be_v make_v less_o that_o be_v whether_o the_o judgement_n be_v only_o enlighten_v or_o with_o the_o light_n of_o judgement_n the_o affection_n be_v also_o change_v which_o be_v the_o effectual_a cast_v out_o it_o do_v so_o provoke_v satan_n &_o distemper_v he_o as_o he_o will_v assault_v that_o man_n more_o fierce_o than_o he_o do_v before_o in_o his_o time_n of_o ignorance_n and_o if_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o a_o true_a enlighten_v than_o he_o be_v more_o busy_a than_o with_o hypoc●i●●_n for_o be_v satan_n that_o be_v a_o enemy_n he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n because_o he_o disthronize_v and_o throw_v he_o out_o of_o heaven_n and_o he_o do_v therefore_o most_o oppose_v himself_o against_o god_n child_n because_o he_o can_v assault_v the_o person_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v how_o he_o assay_v it_o to_o god_n in_o the_o flesh_n luk._n 4.2_o again_o as_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n so_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o will_v draw_v all_o to_o be_v under_o his_o seepter_n 16.11_o joh._n 16.11_o and_o he_o can_v find_v no_o rest_n in_o a_o papist_n nor_o in_o a_o atheist_n for_o he_o know_v there_o be_v a_o canker_n already_o grow_v upon_o their_o conscience_n which_o only_o must_v be_v sear_v by_o the_o hot_a iron_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n 4.2_o 1._o tim._n 4.2_o for_o they_o be_v already_o so_o harden_v in_o prophanesse_n and_o so_o root_v in_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o their_o error_n that_o he_o be_v sure_a enough_o of_o they_o but_o his_o labour_n and_o rage_n be_v to_o assault_v professor_n such_o as_o have_v a_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o especial_o such_o as_o bear_v true_a affection_n towards_o god_n and_o who_o he_o see_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n a_o lively_a example_n and_o figure_n of_o this_o we_o have_v in_o pharaoh_n who_o while_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n exod._n 5.7_o continue_v in_o egypt_n only_o oppress_v they_o with_o heavy_a burden_n but_o then_o most_o fierce_o and_o deadly_o pursue_v they_o when_o they_o be_v go_v out_o of_o egypt_n even_o so_o let_v every_o of_o we_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o the_o further_o we_o be_v from_o the_o regiment_n and_o dominion_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o more_o excellent_a servant_n of_o god_n we_o be_v the_o more_o will_v satan_n buffet_v we_o and_o vex_v us._n this_o be_v that_o christ_n forewarn_v peter_n of_o say_v that_o satan_n desire_v to_o winnow_v he_o like_o wheat_n 22.31_o luk._n 22.31_o and_o why_o he_o above_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n first_o because_o he_o be_v one_o who_o jesus_n love_v second_o on_o the_o confession_n of_o who_o faith_n he_o say_v he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n that_o when_o satan_n be_v effectual_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o and_o distodge_v it_o can_v be_v but_o by_o violence_n for_o he_o will_v not_o only_o winnow_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v feel_v the_o fan_n to_o grate_v we_o but_o even_o the_o flail_n to_o bruise_v us._n example_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o the_o dumb_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n 9.18_o mark_n 9.18_o who_o before_o satan_n will_v lean_v his_o fort_n and_o habitation_n be_v so_o torment_v that_o he_o foam_v rage_v and_o be_v even_o rend_v in_o piece_n so_o as_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v encounter_v with_o a_o false_a alarm_n or_o with_o one_o hand_n but_o in_o this_o combat_n between_o we_o and_o he_o we_o must_v prepare_v ourselves_o to_o great_a temptation_n and_o carry_v job_n before_o we_o as_o our_o pattern_n 1.7_o job_n 1.7_o in_o the_o subversion_n of_o who_o faith_n and_o constancy_n in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n take_v more_o delight_n than_o in_o compass_v the_o whole_a earth_n yet_o be_v he_o faithful_a to_o the_o end_n whereby_o he_o obtain_v the_o crown_n of_o life_n further_o observe_v hence_o the_o wisdom_n and_o policy_n of_o satan_n that_o his_o purpose_n be_v always_o to_o be_v some_o where_o yea_o and_o he_o forsee_v his_o future_a place_n before_o he_o will_v leave_v his_o former_a habitation_n as_o math._n 8.32_o he_o will_v not_o go_v out_o of_o the_o man_n who_o he_o possess_v before_o he_o have_v liberty_n to_o go_v into_o the_o swine_n and_o will_v be_v in_o they_o rather_o than_o no_o where_n for_o satan_n be_v by_o nature_n a_o destroyer_n seek_v oftentimes_o by_o the_o loss_n of_o good_n and_o substance_n to_o draw_v man_n faith_n and_o fear_n from_o god_n as_o he_o assay_v in_o job_n chapter_n 1._o vers_fw-la 15.16.17_o by_o his_o ox_n take_v by_o the_o shabeans_n by_o his_o sheep_n devour_v with_o fire_n and_o by_o his_o camel_n lead_v away_o by_o the_o chaldaean_n to_o drive_v he_o to_o impatiency_n against_o god_n but_o yet_o because_o the_o shake_n of_o a_o man_n estate_n in_o substance_n pierce_v not_o the_o soul_n so_o deep_o not_o withdraw_v not_o the_o heart_n so_o swift_o from_o god_n as_o the_o sin_n and_o corruption_n seat_v in_o himself_o therefore_o his_o travel_n be_v to_o keep_v the_o cup_n foul_a within_o and_o to_o have_v still_o some_o foul_a blood_n lurk_v in_o our_o vein_n which_o in_o time_n may_v break_v forth_o to_o some_o distemper_n not_o but_o that_o thou_o must_v expect_v when_o thou_o be_v call_v to_o feel_v thy_o sin_n and_o have_v withal_o this_o grace_n to_o see_v some_o comfort_n of_o god_n mercy_n to_o be_v so_o hale_v and_o pull_v between_o these_o two_o as_o thou_o shall_v have_v many_o perplex_a fear_n many_o troublesome_a garboil_n and_o infinite_a great_a temptation_n when_o sin_n be_v to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o thou_o and_o see_v so_o many_o difficulty_n thou_o shall_v stand_v appall_v to_o be_v restrain_v from_o the_o loose_a custom_n of_o thy_o former_a sin_n but_o as_o the_o siege_n be_v great_a which_o be_v against_o thou_o so_o must_v thy_o encounter_n and_o resistance_n be_v fierce_a against_o he_o and_o not_o do_v percunctory_o or_o slow_o as_o the_o sluggard_n rise_v in_o the_o morning_n proverb_n 6.10_o with_o a_o little_a raise_n of_o his_o head_n and_o fold_v of_o his_o hand_n to_o sleep_v again_o think_v that_o if_o thou_o be_v not_o so_o evil_a in_o thy_o life_n nor_o so_o malicious_a in_o thy_o heart_n against_o god_n as_o other_o that_o then_o thou_o be_v good_a enough_o and_o have_v sufficient_o profit_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n for_o thy_o lukewarmth_n in_o religion_n be_v loathsome_a to_o the_o lord_n reu._n 3.14_o and_o a_o strong_a stirrup_n for_o satan_n to_o get_v up_o to_o thy_o soul_n again_o and_o therefore_o consider_v and_o thou_o shall_v find_v whether_o he_o be_v true_o or_o hypocritical_o cast_v out_o of_o thou_o consider_v whether_o thou_o feel_v not_o foul_a and_o gross_a temptation_n to_o beset_v thou_o for_o if_o satan_n labour_v not_o mighty_o in_o this_o thou_o be_v not_o call_v for_o if_o thou_o be_v a_o despiser_n of_o the_o word_n or_o nourish_v any_o such_o enormous_a fault_n as_o seem_v sweet_a to_o thy_o taste_n satan_n have_v thou_o at_o commandment_n what_o need_v he_o tempt_v thou_o when_o thou_o tempt_v thyself_o not_o that_o he_o that_o fall_v into_o temptation_n and_o fulfil_v they_o be_v the_o best_a christian_a but_o he_o that_o have_v no_o tub_n set_v in_o his_o way_n to_o stumble_v at_o and_o find_v every_o thing_n plain_a and_o easy_a may_v know_v he_o live_v in_o the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v not_o to_o heaven_n 7.13_o math._n 7.13_o for_o he_o that_o be_v most_o vex_a and_o have_v
house_n that_o as_o we_o dwell_v and_o abide_v in_o they_o so_o do_v christ_n by_o his_o spirit_n dwell_v and_o abide_v in_o us._n and_o 1._o cor._n 6.19_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v in_o you_o which_o you_o have_v of_o god_n and_o 1._o cor._n 3.16_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n dwell_v in_o you_o and_o 2._o cor._n 6.16_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_a god_n as_o god_n have_v say_v i_o will_v dwell_v among_o you_o and_o walk_v there_o and_o john_n 14.23_o if_o any_o man_n love_v i_o he_o will_v keep_v my_o word_n and_o my_o father_n will_v love_v he_o and_o we_o will_v come_v unto_o he_o and_o dwell_v with_o he_o by_o which_o place_n appear_v how_o these_o earthen_a vessel_n of_o our_o body_n be_v honour_v by_o be_v the_o habitation_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n 2.22_o ephe._n 2.22_o that_o as_o by_o the_o former_a comparison_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o christ_n by_o put_v he_o on_o we_o so_o by_o this_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o we_o by_o his_o dwell_n and_o abide_v with_o us._n out_o of_o which_o we_o must_v learn_v first_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o unspotted_a of_o the_o world_n because_o we_o be_v to_o entertain_v so_o great_a a_o prince_n as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o if_o we_o think_v all_o our_o labour_n too_o little_a to_o cleanse_v &_o beautify_v that_o room_n wherein_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v sit_v 6.20_o 1._o cor._n 6.20_o who_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o same_o lump_n ourselves_o be_v how_o much_o more_o must_v we_o strive_v to_o have_v all_o our_o member_n keep_v chaste_a and_o sanctify_v which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o several_a room_n for_o he_o who_o by_o his_o heavenly_a generation_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 9.6_o esay_n 9.6_o the_o father_n counsellor_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n second_o by_o this_o dwell_n of_o christ_n with_o we_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o we_o be_v his_o for_o no_o man_n will_v willing_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n whereof_o he_o be_v not_o owner_n especial_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n be_v not_o able_a to_o contain_v will_v not_o set_v up_o his_o throne_n and_o seat_n in_o our_o soul_n if_o he_o do_v not_o delight_n in_o we_o neither_o can_v he_o take_v any_o pleasure_n to_o lodge_v with_o we_o if_o we_o be_v not_o his_o which_o may_v be_v our_o undoubted_a comfort_n that_o christ_n possess_v the_o fort_n and_o castle_n of_o our_o body_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o satan_n either_o by_o deceitful_a policy_n to_o surprise_v we_o or_o by_o his_o fiery_a dart_n to_o sti●●●●s_n or_o by_o his_o subtle_a illusion_n to_o ensnare_v we_o or_o by_o his_o bitter_a and_o cruel_a invasion_n to_o vanquish_v we_o for_o as_o joh._n 10.28_o we_o be_v the_o sheep_n of_o his_o pasture_n and_o none_o can_v pluck_v we_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n the_o three_o comparison_n be_v in_o 1._o peter_n 2.4_o where_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v resemble_v to_o a_o building_n for_o as_o a_o building_n can_v be_v firm_a and_o sure_a except_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o strong_a foundation_n no_o more_o can_v we_o stand_v one_o minute_n if_o we_o be_v not_o build_v upon_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o work_n make_v but_o one_o building_n so_o be_v it_o betwixt_o christ_n and_o we_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n elect_v and_o precious_a &_o we_o be_v lively_a stone_n whereby_o we_o be_v make_v a_o spiritual_a house_n unto_o god_n by_o christ_n hence_o learn_v first_o that_o all_o our_o strength_n and_o sufficiency_n be_v from_o god_n for_o if_o we_o will_v be_v a_o build_n of_o ourselves_o and_o lay_v our_o foundation_n in_o our_o own_o righteousness_n a_o little_a sprinkle_n of_o persecution_n will_v wash_v we_o away_o as_o it_o do_v mat._n 7.26_o wash_v away_o the_o house_n that_o be_v so_o foolish_o build_v upon_o the_o sand_n but_o in_o christ_n alone_o we_o live_v move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v it_o be_v he_o that_o can_v command_v the_o sea_n to_o be_v as_o a_o pavement_n for_o peter_n to_o walk_v on_o matt._n 14.29_o who_o at_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o wind_n arise_v through_o weakness_n in_o himself_o be_v force_v to_o cry_v master_n save_o i_o yea_o when_o as_o his_o disciple_n strike_v with_o the_o fear_n and_o force_v of_o a_o storm_n challenge_v he_o as_o if_o he_o care_v not_o though_o they_o perish_v 4.39_o luk_n 8.22_o mark_n 4.39_o he_o then_o be_v through_o their_o prayer_n awake_v rebuke_v the_o wind_n and_o command_v the_o sea_n to_o be_v still_o and_o it_o be_v so_o now_o if_o peter_n that_o have_v such_o strength_n of_o faith_n as_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v build_v upon_o his_o confession_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v so_o continual_o teach_v of_o christ_n feel_v no_o power_n in_o themselves_o to_o resist_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o flesh_n without_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n much_o less_o be_v we_o able_a to_o set_v one_o foot_n forward_o towards_o the_o way_n of_o heaven_n or_o to_o draw_v one_o foot_n backward_o from_o the_o way_n to_o sin_n unless_o we_o lay_v the_o foundation_n on_o our_o rock_n christ_n jesus_n who_o have_v measure_v the_o heaven_n with_o a_o span_n hold_v the_o wind_n in_o his_o fist_n and_o have_v sound_v the_o deep_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o whatsoever_o fall_v on_o he_o shall_v be_v break_v and_o whosoever_o resist_v he_o shall_v be_v dash_v into_o piece_n second_o observe_v that_o we_o be_v no_o further_o the_o house_n of_o god_n than_o we_o do_v build_v upon_o christ_n and_o that_o since_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o building_n make_v but_o one_o work_n our_o prayer_n and_o all_o our_o other_o service_n of_o god_n must_v be_v offer_v up_o upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v christ_n 8.3_o reu._n 8.3_o ●●at_a as_o paul_n rejoice_v galat._n 6.14_o be_v only_o in_o christ_n crucify_v so_o may_v we_o be_v rest_v ourselves_o whole_o upon_o he_o and_o place_v our_o whole_a contentment_n in_o he_o for_o as_o he_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o building_n 〈◊〉_d be_v he_o also_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o building_n we_o be_v without_o he_o a_o sinful_a nation_n and_o a_o people_n lade_v with_o iniquity_n but_o through_o he_o 1._o pet._n 2.9_o a_o choose_a generation_n a_o holy_a nation_n and_o a_o people_n set_v at_o liberty_n to_o show_v forth_o the_o virtue_n of_o he_o that_o call_v us._n let_v we_o therefore_o beware_v we_o daw_v be_v not_o ourselves_o with_o untempered_a mortar_n bring_v in_o the_o stubble_n of_o man_n merit_n or_o invention_n to_o make_v up_o this_o frame_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o have_v any_o corner_n in_o this_o house_n that_o be_v not_o the_o least_o member_n of_o our_o body_n nor_o the_o least_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o leave_v upon_o the_o arm_n of_o flesh_n or_o to_o be_v support_v by_o the_o wisdom_n of_o vain_a man_n for_o this_o be_v to_o settle_v part_n of_o the_o build_n upon_o a_o rock_n and_o the_o rest_n upon_o the_o sand_n which_o will_v overthrow_v all_o for_o the_o whole_a man_n must_v be_v build_v upon_o christ_n and_o he_o must_v be_v the_o corner_n stone_n to_o join_v both_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n unto_o god_n for_o as_o the_o gold_n be_v never_o say_v to_o be_v purify_v till_o all_o the_o dross_n be_v sever_v from_o it_o so_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o have_v as_o it_o be_v some_o of_o our_o affection_n refine_v and_o the_o rest_n to_o remain_v drossy_a and_o pollute_a but_o if_o we_o will_v be_v wedge_n of_o gold_n for_o the_o lord_n use_v and_o vessel_n of_o honour_n for_o his_o house_n christ_n must_v be_v in_o every_o part_n of_o we_o to_o join_v we_o to_o himself_o that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a even_o as_o he_o be_v holy_a the_o four_o comparison_n be_v ephes_n 1.22.23_o where_o god_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o head_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n in_o which_o place_n christ_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o body_n that_o as_o the_o member_n be_v knit_v and_o unite_v to_o the_o body_n so_o be_v all_o we_o as_o member_n ingraft_v and_o incorporate_a into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o as_o the_o member_n be_v thus_o unite_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o body_n so_o we_o be_v join_v unto_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v christ_n and_o as_o the_o heat_n and_o life_n which_o be_v in_o the_o body_n be_v disperse_v and_o diffuse_v into_o every_o member_n even_o so_o the_o life_n &_o the_o grace_n which_o
the_o everlasting_a curse_n of_o god_n for_o so_o be_v we_o all_o by_o nature_n in_o which_o nature_n of_o we_o he_o represent_v we_o become_v vile_a before_o his_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o us._n but_o now_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n upon_o he_o that_o be_v not_o imaginary_a but_o true_a and_o sensible_a both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n so_o extreme_a as_o in_o anguish_n of_o spirit_n he_o be_v drive_v to_o cry_v my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o yea_o the_o death_n he_o endure_v be_v in_o it_o own_o kind_a accurse_a as_o it_o be_v write_v deut._n 21.23_o curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o hang_v on_o the_o tree_n yea_o look_v what_o misery_n what_o want_v what_o danger_n he_o do_v undergo_v and_o taste_v of_o from_o his_o birth_n to_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n the_o same_o he_o suffer_v and_o sleep_v in_o only_o for_o we_o which_o clear_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o a_o righteous_a man_n shall_v smart_v for_o we_o sinner_n because_o we_o be_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o we_o which_o i_o urge_v the_o more_o that_o we_o may_v see_v the_o great_a price_n the_o son_n of_o god_n pay_v for_o our_o redemption_n to_o stir_v we_o up_o to_o a_o better_a and_o deep_a consideration_n of_o it_o he_o be_v the_o only_a shepherd_n that_o ever_o give_v his_o life_n for_o his_o sheep_n the_o only_a lamb_n which_o be_v unspotted_a in_o himself_o do_v ever_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o scab_n and_o ulcer_n of_o the_o whole_a flock_n the_o only_a man_n full_a of_o sorrow_n and_o experience_n of_o infirmity_n who_o the_o world_n judge_v as_o plague_v &_o smite_v of_o god_n and_o humble_v yet_o be_v it_o only_o for_o our_o iniquity_n that_o the_o chastisement_n of_o our_o peace_n may_v be_v upon_o he_o therefore_o as_o esay_n 53.11_o let_v he_o see_v the_o travel_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o death_n in_o the_o salvation_n of_o we_o his_o people_n for_o the_o other_o profit_n it_o be_v also_o double_a as_o first_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o grace_n second_o of_o the_o glory_n for_o his_o grace_n and_o this_o stand_v also_o with_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v in_o we_o and_o we_o in_o he_o god_n must_v needs_o with_o he_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n also_o now_o the_o grace_n we_o taste_v of_o by_o this_o conjunction_n be_v twofold_a first_o by_o imputation_n which_o be_v his_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n we_o be_v stark_o bankerupt_v able_a to_o pay_v nothing_o and_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o obedience_n we_o be_v rebellious_a bastard_n able_a to_o fulfil_v nothing_o second_o in_o ourselves_o but_o draw_v and_o derive_v from_o christ_n the_o fountain_n as_o the_o change_n of_o our_o affection_n reform_v of_o our_o judgement_n renew_v of_o our_o mind_n mortification_n &_o a_o sanctify_a life_n and_o these_o grace_n do_v far_o more_o abound_v in_o christ_n then_o ever_o they_o do_v in_o adam_n in_o his_o integrity_n for_o he_o be_v flesh_n make_v ●●t_n after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n whereas_o this_o flesh_n christ_n have_v the_o god_n head_n dwell_v in_o he_o bodily_a &_o as_o col._n 1.18_o have_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o pre-eminence_n that_o we_o may_v taste_v of_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o grace_n as_o far_o as_o be_v fit_a and_o for_o the_o second_o much_o be_v the_o glory_n for_o his_o grace_n nam_o eternal_a life_n of_o this_o he_o have_v also_o make_v we_o partaker_n you_o as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o other_o errand_n to_o heaven_n he_o say_v io._n 14.32_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o in_o my_o father_n house_n therefore_o let_v we_o not_o say_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o be_v let_v we_o not_o doubt_v but_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o as_o christ_n be_v ascend_v so_o shall_v we_o and_o it_o be_v no_o presumption_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o lord_n for_o his_o son_n sake_n will_v save_v thou_o for_o he_o have_v first_o give_v thou_o his_o word_n and_o promise_n he_o that_o believe_v and_o repent_v shall_v be_v save_v so_o as_o if_o thou_o can_v apply_v repentance_n to_o thyself_o thou_o may_v challenge_v he_o on_o his_o word_n and_o second_o thou_o have_v his_o oath_n he_o swear_v to_o abraham_n that_o his_o seed_n through_o his_o faith_n shall_v be_v bless_v and_o this_o have_v christ_n swear_v again_o a_o man_n amen_o he_o that_o believe_v be_v already_o translate_v from_o death_n to_o life_n show_v the_o certainty_n of_o it_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o speech_n as_o if_o it_o be_v already_o do_v and_o if_o thou_o will_v rely_v upon_o neither_o of_o the_o former_a he_o have_v three_o leave_v thou_o a_o pawn_n that_o be_v his_o spirit_n to_o guide_v and_o conduct_v thou_o in_o the_o right_a way_n that_o though_o thyself_o can_v be_v in_o heaven_n as_o yet_o yet_o thy_o affection_n may_v be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o thy_o faith_n in_o his_o resurrection_n may_v assure_v thou_o of_o thy_o incorruption_n and_o thy_o comfort_n in_o his_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n may_v rebound_v back_o upon_o thy_o own_o soul_n in_o be_v a_o undoubted_a testimony_n of_o thy_o exaltation_n and_o advancement_n hereafter_o for_o where_o christ_n be_v there_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o conjunction_n between_o thou_o and_o he_o thou_o must_v needs_o be_v also_o hence_o arise_v a_o most_o comfortable_a instruction_n for_o a_o afflict_a conscience_n for_o satan_n will_v lay_v a_o whole_a scroll_n of_o particular_a sin_n before_o thou_o charge_v thou_o that_o there_o be_v many_o omit_v wherein_o thou_o have_v offend_v that_o corruption_n be_v so_o wear_v into_o thy_o bone_n and_o lie_v so_o low_a at_o the_o heart_n as_o it_o can_v be_v take_v forth_o but_o must_v needs_o rankle_v to_o damnation_n and_o that_o thy_o sin_n be_v in_o their_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o their_o weight_n so_o heavy_a as_o there_o can_v be_v no_o case_n nor_o satisfaction_n for_o they_o thou_o must_v confess_v thou_o be_v indeed_o in_o thyself_o a_o worm_n unworthy_a to_o creep_v upon_o the_o earth_n but_o in_o christ_n as_o bold_a and_o strong_a as_o a_o lion_n yea_o if_o thou_o can_v appropriate_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n to_o thyself_o in_o particular_a as_o the_o gospel_n propound_v they_o general_o thou_o may_v answer_v that_o by_o the_o ●●rity_n of_o his_o birth_n the_o obedience_n of_o his_o life_n and_o the_o bitterness_n of_o his_o death_n he_o have_v cleanse_v thou_o from_o thy_o sin_n wherein_o thou_o be_v conceive_v make_v up_o the_o breach_n of_o thy_o rebellion_n and_o ransom_v thou_o from_o the_o cruelty_n of_o that_o second_o death_n whereinto_o thou_o be_v plunge_v by_o thy_o actual_a pollution_n &_o this_o thou_o know_v because_o thou_o be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o he_o with_o thou_o true_a indeed_o sathan_n will_v confess_v that_o christ_n take_v our_o flesh_n upon_o he_o as_o himself_o say_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o he_o be_v come_v before_o his_o time_n to_o torment_v he_o but_o yet_o he_o will_v suggest_v that_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o his_o satisfaction_n can_v be_v but_o for_o one_o and_o he_o will_v tell_v thou_o in_o this_o true_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n be_v infinite_a and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v infinite_a for_o which_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v as_o infinite_a which_o say_v he_o can_v be_v to_o which_o answer_n that_o as_o by_o the_o first_o adam_n all_o man_n be_v make_v sinner_n so_o by_o the_o second_o adam_n which_o be_v christ_n all_o that_o believe_v be_v make_v righteous_a and_o as_o adam_n can_v damn_v all_o that_o shall_v be_v damn_v for_o all_o in_o he_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n so_o christ_n can_v save_v all_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o all_o in_o he_o be_v bring_v again_o into_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n 2.7_o reu._n 2.7_o in_o rom._n 5.14_o and_o 1._o cor._n 15.22_o adam_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o as_o adam_n give_v as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v to_o his_o posterity_n so_o do_v christ_n proportionable_o give_v that_o he_o have_v to_o those_o that_o be_v he_o adam_n give_v sin_n and_o death_n christ_n give_v life_n and_o grace_n and_o they_o disagree_v in_o three_o respect_n first_o we_o receive_v sin_n from_o adam_n by_o nature_n but_o we_o receive_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o life_n eternal_a by_o nature_n but_o by_o imputation_n and_o by_o grace_n only_o and_o not_o by_o imitation_n for_o we_o can_v imitate_v christ_n in_o every_o thing_n second_o by_o adam_n come_v only_o original_a sin_n not_o actual_a but_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v for_o both_o
we_o to_o mingle_v with_o our_o good_a thought_n evil_a thought_n and_o herein_o we_o must_v first_o know_v what_o we_o be_v by_o nature_n and_o before_o our_o conversion_n namely_o we_o be_v bind_v both_o hand_n and_o foot_n as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o chain_n and_o iron_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o can_v move_v to_o any_o good_a and_o so_o long_o we_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o satan_n who_o whip_v we_o with_o our_o own_o corruption_n and_o so_o harden_v our_o heart_n through_o use_n and_o custom_n of_o sin_n that_o we_o be_v lead_v into_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n before_o we_o see_v it_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n do_v strike_v we_o on_o the_o side_n as_o he_o do_v peter_n and_o open_v our_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v the_o heart_n of_o lydia_n that_o we_o do_v see_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n 12.7.16.14_o act._n 12.7.16.14_o and_o do_v feel_v our_o iron_n somewhat_o unloose_a that_o be_v our_o corruption_n abate_v whereby_o we_o get_v some_o liberty_n to_o do_v that_o be_v good_a though_o it_o be_v not_o do_v with_o that_o perfection_n that_o be_v require_v yet_o let_v we_o assure_v ourselves_o that_o our_o purpose_n and_o desire_v to_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o to_o do_v good_a be_v accept_v of_o he_o for_o he_o regard_v the_o heart_n and_o dispense_v with_o the_o imperfection_n of_o the_o outward_a man_n to_o which_o purpose_n saint_n paul_n say_v phil._n 3.13.14_o i_o forget_v that_o which_o be_v behind_o and_o endeavour_n to_o that_o be_v before_o and_o follow_v hard_a towards_o the_o mark_n for_o the_o price_n of_o the_o high_a call_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n in_o which_o observe_v three_o thing_n first_o we_o must_v know_v our_o mark_n at_o which_o we_o must_v 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v christ_n and_o unto_o the_o come_n of_o this_o mark_n we_o must_v be_v absolute_o resolve_v second_o we_o must_v not_o look_v behind_o we_o not_o forbid_v we_o to_o look_v back_o unto_o our_o former_a estate_n but_o nothing_o must_v hinder_v we_o from_o go_v to_o this_o work_n as_o whoredom_n usury_n flattery_n deceit_n idolatry_n and_o such_o like_a gross_a sin_n three_o we_o must_v so_o strive_v as_o in_o the_o end_n we_o may_v attain_v this_o mark_n which_o be_v christ_n and_o so_o we_o come_v thither_o it_o skill_v not_o whether_o we_o creep_v or_o go_v by_o step_n and_o degree_n answerable_a to_o that_o 1._o cor._n 9.24_o so_o run_v that_o you_o obtain_v that_o though_o we_o have_v many_o stop_n in_o the_o flesh_n yet_o if_o our_o eye_n be_v still_o upon_o god_n it_o suffice_v last_o that_o we_o may_v be_v abash_v at_o the_o shake_n of_o sin_n and_o may_v grow_v into_o perfect_a hatred_n and_o detestation_n of_o it_o we_o see_v here_o the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o they_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v at_o league_n with_o hell_n that_o howsoever_o their_o life_n be_v varnish_v over_o with_o a_o little_a temporal_a prosperity_n yet_o they_o feed_v themselves_o but_o for_o their_o slaughter_n for_o be_v out_o of_o christ_n and_o disclaim_v holiness_n of_o life_n their_o glory_n shall_v be_v their_o shame_n and_o their_o end_n be_v but_o damnation_n it_o be_v impossible_a as_o solomon_n say_v prover._n 12.3_o for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v establish_v by_o wickedness_n if_o therefore_o thou_o see_v his_o barn_n full_a let_v not_o thy_o soul_n envy_v it_o for_o in_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o wicked_a there_o be_v trouble_v because_o they_o tend_v to_o sin_n and_o the_o lord_n cast_v away_o his_o substance_n if_o thou_o see_v he_o tall_a and_o proud_a as_o the_o cedar_n bless_v thou_o thyself_o in_o thy_o humility_n for_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v in_o his_o house_n though_o his_o excellency_n mount_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o his_o head_n reach_v up_o to_o the_o cloud_n yet_o shall_v he_o perish_v for_o ever_o like_o his_o dung_n his_o root_n shall_v be_v dry_v up_o beneath_o and_o above_o his_o branch_n shall_v be_v cut_v down_o if_o thou_o see_v he_o seat_v and_o wax_a old_a in_o his_o outward_a happiness_n let_v it_o nothing_o trouble_v thou_o for_o his_o bone_n be_v full_a of_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o youth_n and_o it_o shall_v lie_v down_o with_o he_o in_o the_o dust_n at_o length_n his_o eye_n shall_v fail_v and_o then_o shall_v his_o candle_n be_v put_v out_o his_o refuge_n shall_v perish_v and_o then_o fearfulness_n shall_v drive_v he_o to_o his_o foot_n if_o thou_o see_v he_o eat_v and_o drink_v and_o rise_v up_o to_o play_v desire_v not_o thou_o to_o taste_v of_o his_o joy_n for_o his_o rejoice_v be_v short_a and_o but_o a_o moment_n and_o though_o wickedness_n be_v sweet_a in_o his_o mouth_n yet_o god_n shall_v draw_v 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o his_o belly_n yea_o affliction_n follow_v sinner_n and_o fear_n shall_v be_v for_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n such_o a_o one_o consume_v like_o a_o r●●●_n thing_n god_n shall_v run_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o arm_n shall_v be_v break_v 〈◊〉_d shall_v destroy_v he_o as_o the_o vine_n her_o sour_a grape_n and_o cast_v he_o off_o 〈◊〉_d the_o olive_n do_v her_o flower_n for_o he_o that_o be_v not_o plant_v in_o christ_n his_o branch_n can_v be_v green_a but_o brimstone_n shall_v be_v scatter_v in_o 〈◊〉_d habitation_n and_o his_o hope_n shall_v be_v indignation_n and_o sorrow_n of_o mi●●_n rom_n chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 2._o verse_n 2_o for_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v free_v i_o from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o death_n in_o this_o verse_n the_o apostle_n insi_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n which_o he_o do_v by_o two_o argument_n first_o because_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o law_n and_o dominion_n of_o sin_n second_o because_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o law_n and_o domination_n of_o death_n against_o these_o t●●o_o the_o conscience_n oppose_v two_o thing_n first_o how_o be_v we_o free_v from_o the_o law_n and_o power_n of_o sin_n since_o we_o have_v so_o many_o unclean_a thought_n so_o many_o rage_a affection_n and_o so_o many_o vile_a and_o naughty_a action_n that_o pass_v from_o we_o in_o the_o course_n of_o our_o life_n second_o how_o be_v we_o free_v from_o the_o law_n and_o sting_n of_o death_n since_o we_o die_v daily_o and_o suffer_v so_o many_o affliction_n and_o misery_n in_o this_o life_n which_o be_v the_o merit_n and_o desert_n of_o sin_n these_o two_o objection_n that_o may_v scare_v and_o trouble_v ●●e_z tender_a conscience_n and_o inward_a peace_n of_o a_o christian_a he_o answer_v to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n in_o this_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d he_o show_v how_o far_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o 19_o verse_n to_o the_o 17._o how_o far_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o law_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o first_o punishment_n for_o sin_n as_o appear_v gen._n 2.17_o in_o the_o day_n that_o thou_o eat_v thereof_o thou_o shall_v die_v 〈◊〉_d death_n and_o from_o the_o 17._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n he_o trew_v how_o far_o we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o misery_n and_o calamity_n of_o 〈◊〉_d life_n now_o in_o this_o verse_n as_o it_o devide_v itself_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v two_o ●●●ing_n first_o how_o and_o by_o what_o mean_v we_o obtain_v this_o freedom_n ●●●ly_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n second_o ●●things_n from_o which_o we_o be_v free_v which_o be_v two_o first_o from_o the_o ●●●son_n of_o sin_n second_o from_o the_o power_n of_o death_n for_o the_o first_o we_o must_v learn_v to_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o we_o the_o one_o be_v absolute_a and_o inherent_a in_o christ_n the_o virtue_n whereof_o impute_v unto_o we_o bring_v perefect_a absolution_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o sin_n and_o bitterness_n of_o death_n the_o other_o be_v but_o pour_v into_o we_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n spirit_n abide_v in_o we_o do_v but_o qualify_v and_o temper_v the_o heat_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o violence_n of_o death_n which_o otherwise_o will_v rage_v over_o us._n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o we_o we_o may_v well_o cry_v out_o with_o saint_n paul_n rom._n 7.24_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o we_o be_v who_o shall_v deliver_v we_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n then_o may_v we_o bold_o say_v we_o be_v already_o deliver_v from_o it_o that_o this_o may_v be_v
the_o obedience_n of_o the_o law_n in_o some_o measure_n and_o stir_v up_o our_o affection_n to_o a_o delight_n in_o it_o three_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o power_n of_o provocation_n which_o be_v in_o the_o law_n to_o urge_v we_o to_o sin_n because_o our_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n the_o law_n bring_v we_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o scaffold_n and_o show_v we_o hell_n gate_n and_o heaven_n a_o far_o off_o not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o make_v passage_n to_o it_o teach_v we_o to_o avoid_v all_o sinful_a occasion_n whereby_o our_o foot_n may_v be_v find_v drip_v and_o to_o lay_v the_o better_a hold_n upon_o the_o bridge_n the_o lord_n jesus_n by_o who_o the_o conscience_n be_v so_o pacify_v as_o we_o be_v ever_o direct_v in_o the_o right_a way_n so_o as_o we_o be_v dead_a to_o it_o in_o the_o curse_n of_o it_o and_o alive_a to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o direction_n we_o be_v dead_a to_o it_o in_o the_o bondage_n of_o it_o and_o alive_a to_o it_o in_o the_o obedience_n of_o it_o god_n spirit_n direct_v our_o heart_n to_o do_v that_o willing_o which_o the_o law_n require_v since_o than_o there_o be_v this_o necessity_n lay_v upon_o we_o to_o be_v dead_a unto_o sin_n for_o which_o sin_n the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n be_v due_a and_o to_o be_v live_v to_o newness_n of_o life_n though_o we_o see_v this_o rich_a benefit_n of_o have_v the_o righteosnesse_n of_o the_o law_n fulfil_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o christ_n only_o and_o that_o for_o we_o we_o must_v beware_v we_o fall_v not_o either_o into_o profane_a security_n or_o else_o into_o presumptuous_a hypocrisy_n the_o one_o think_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n not_o great_o requisite_a the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v easy_o obtain_v the_o one_o run_v on_o still_o to_o sin_n the_o other_o cover_v their_o nakedness_n with_o figleave_n which_o be_v not_o broad_a enough_o to_o cover_v all_o nor_o thick_a enough_o to_o hide_v they_o from_o his_o eye_n that_o pierce_v into_o the_o deep_a darkness_n for_o these_o may_v have_v a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n and_o subscribe_v unto_o it_o a_o glimmer_a sight_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o rejoice_v at_o it_o and_o yet_o not_o have_v sin_n condemn_v in_o their_o flesh_n but_o their_o flesh_n damn_v for_o their_o sin_n whereas_o if_o we_o strait_o try_v ourselves_o by_o the_o law_n and_o see_v our_o sin_n as_o sore_n run_v full_a of_o corruption_n and_o damnation_n to_o be_v await_v upon_o the_o least_o sin_n then_o be_v the_o commandment_n come_v unto_o we_o and_o then_o sin_n be_v reviue_v we_o know_v to_o what_o physician_n to_o go_v and_o what_o eye_n salve_n to_o crave_v for_o we_o can_v look_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n unless_o we_o look_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o law_n and_o if_o we_o fail_v in_o this_o we_o shall_v know_v no_o sin_n and_o so_o consequent_o no_o saviour_n for_o sin_n for_o god_n be_v a_o fearful_a judge_n and_o a_o consume_a fire_n we_o can_v stand_v before_o he_o without_o peace_n of_o conscience_n nor_o have_v this_o peace_n without_o grace_n from_o christ_n nor_o partake_v of_o this_o grace_n without_o acknowledgement_n of_o misery_n nor_o come_v to_o this_o acknowledgement_n without_o a_o through_o sight_n of_o our_o sin_n nor_o attain_v to_o this_o sight_n without_o a_o sight_n of_o damnation_n due_a for_o they_o nor_o see_v this_o damnation_n without_o a_o trial_n of_o ourselves_o by_o the_o commandment_n so_o as_o christ_n have_v not_o by_o his_o virtue_n abate_v but_o advance_v the_o power_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o it_o for_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v namely_o to_o set_v our_o heart_n on_o god_n and_o our_o way_n in_o the_o trade_n of_o his_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o let_v we_o by_o all_o mean_n shun_v two_o extremity_n first_o a_o restless_a desire_n to_o perform_v the_o law_n so_o precise_o as_o to_o seek_v life_n in_o it_o which_o be_v hard_o for_o we_o to_o do_v then_o to_o remove_v mountain_n or_o to_o climb_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o see_v the_o seat_n of_o god_n second_o reckless_a impiety_n to_o live_v profane_o because_o we_o can_v live_v so_o precise_o as_o we_o ought_v for_o the_o law_n be_v the_o goal_n we_o must_v time_n at_o and_o the_o perfection_n we_o must_v strive_v to_o and_o though_o in_o our_o best_a work_n we_o be_v unprofitable_a yet_o must_v we_o work_v lest_o we_o be_v abominable_a now_o for_o the_o second_o part_n namely_o for_o who_o christ_n take_v this_o pain_n to_o establish_v and_o fulfil_v the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v for_o such_o as_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n which_o teach_v we_o to_o know_v a_o child_n of_o god_n from_o a_o reprobate_n the_o life_n of_o the_o one_o be_v like_o the_o darkness_n of_o egypt_n gross_a and_o palpable_a the_o other_o like_o the_o sunshine_n clear_a and_o comfortable_a and_o this_o life_n in_o the_o elect_a may_v be_v discern_v by_o two_o mark_n first_o by_o a_o spiritual_a invisible_a internal_a testimony_n second_o by_o a_o real_a external_a and_o visible_a the_o first_o be_v discover_v two_o way_n first_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v in_o confidence_n to_o the_o lord_n as_o to_o a_o father_n second_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n whereby_o we_o live_v in_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n as_o to_o a_o lord_n the_o outward_a evidence_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v likewise_o know_v two_o way_n first_o by_o a_o outward_a profession_n second_o by_o walk_v in_o that_o profession_n now_o lest_o we_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o inward_a sign_n first_o through_o pride_n in_o ourselves_o and_o the_o policy_n of_o sathan_n to_o make_v we_o think_v we_o have_v they_o when_o we_o want_v they_o as_o matth._n 7.23_o many_o by_o do_v great_a thing_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n will_v entitle_v themselves_o to_o heaven_n which_o be_v a_o purchase_n for_o the_o elect_n only_o but_o he_o will_v profess_v he_o never_o know_v they_o second_o through_o the_o secrecy_n of_o they_o they_o be_v know_v only_o to_o god_n as_o 1._o cor._n 2.10_o the_o spirit_n search_v all_o thing_n and_o no_o man_n know_v the_o heart_n but_o he_o that_o make_v it_o therefore_o a_o invisible_a faith_n must_v be_v discern_v by_o visible_a fruit_n and_o who_o can_v tell_v that_o the_o power_n of_o his_o soul_n be_v reform_v if_o it_o break_v not_o forth_o into_o his_o life_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o badge_n of_o a_o renew_a christian_n be_v first_o a_o proclamation_n as_o it_o be_v who_o he_o be_v and_o under_o who_o he_o serve_v second_o a_o blameless_a course_n in_o conversation_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v communicable_a to_o hypocrite_n who_o will_v seem_v to_o carry_v a_o weapon_n for_o the_o lord_n but_o with_o weak_a hand_n and_o false_a heart_n make_v a_o flourish_n as_o if_o he_o will_v defy_v the_o devil_n yet_o secret_o and_o covert_o feed_v on_o he_o and_o defend_v he_o in_o his_o desire_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o be_v true_o elect_a must_v be_v measure_v by_o his_o life_n and_o we_o must_v not_o look_v into_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o he_o but_o into_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o hang_v about_o he_o not_o to_o his_o invisible_a faith_n but_o to_o his_o visible_a work_n of_o faith_n not_o to_o his_o outward_a profession_n but_o to_o his_o walk_a according_a to_o his_o profession_n as_o gal._n 5.25_o if_o we_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n we_o must_v also_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n so_o as_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o their_o tongue_n but_o by_o their_o step_n and_o since_o we_o must_v judge_v they_o this_o way_n if_o we_o see_v one_o live_v inordinate_o swear_v outrageous_o blaspheme_v mighty_o oppress_v cruel_o haunt_v wicked_a company_n and_o such_o like_a we_o may_v well_o say_v he_o be_v wicked_a and_o if_o he_o reply_v judge_v not_o thou_o may_v answer_v thou_o may_v safe_o judge_v the_o root_n by_o the_o tree_n and_o the_o tree_n by_o the_o fruit_n a_o fountain_n by_o the_o stream_n and_o the_o stream_n by_o their_o clearness_n a_o sick_a man_n by_o his_o weakness_n and_o the_o danger_n of_o his_o weakness_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o disease_n and_o what_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n by_o that_o come_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n mat._n 15.19_o for_o how_o can_v such_o a_o sea_n of_o sin_n swell_v over_o their_o bank_n if_o thou_o be_v stable_a mind_a those_o haughty_a look_n can_v never_o so_o transform_v thy_o countenance_n if_o pride_n do_v not_o possess_v thou_o nor_o thy_o usury_n and_o oppression_n so_o rage_n and_o some_o out_o in_o thy_o
mean_v by_o spirit_n for_o the_o first_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o flesh_n christ_n tell_v we_o john_n 3.5_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o nicodemus_n say_v that_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v see_v heaven_n meaning_n thereby_o that_o before_o a_o man_n be_v regenerate_v he_o be_v nothing_o but_o flesh_n soul_n and_o body_n and_o all_o for_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o a_o clean_a thing_n can_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o corruption_n so_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15.50_o say_v that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v inherit_v heaven_n not_o mean_v thereby_o that_o flesh_n wherein_o we_o be_v enclose_v for_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o it_o shall_v see_v god_n but_o the_o old_a man_n the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v our_o mother_n wit_n and_o will_n howbeit_o what_o this_o flesh_n be_v be_v more_o ample_o set_v down_o gen._n 6.5_o where_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o original_n that_o all_o the_o very_a mould_n of_o the_o devise_v thought_n of_o a_o man_n heart_n be_v not_o incline_v to_o evil_a but_o simple_o evil_a and_o not_o evil_a but_o only_o evil_a and_o not_o only_o evil_a but_o evil_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o not_o only_o evil_a in_o all_o thing_n but_o evil_a in_o all_o thing_n every_o day_n and_o saint_n paul_n rom._n 3.10_o make_v a_o full_a description_n of_o a_o fleshly_a man_n show_v what_o every_o one_o be_v by_o nature_n there_o be_v none_o righteous_a no_o not_o one_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o there_o be_v none_o that_o seek_v god_n and_o for_o not_o seek_v he_o they_o be_v all_o become_v apostat_n and_o by_o this_o their_o apostasy_n be_v become_v unprofitable_a and_o be_v thus_o of_o no_o value_n their_o throat_n be_v a_o open_a sepulchre_n and_o be_v thus_o enlarge_v like_o hell_n they_o use_v they_o either_o to_o deceit_n in_o that_o poison_n be_v under_o their_o lip_n or_o else_o their_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o bitterness_n which_o be_v two_o contrary_a sin_n their_o foot_n be_v swift_a to_o shed_v blood_n and_o destruction_n and_o calamity_n be_v in_o all_o their_o way_n and_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n they_o have_v not_o know_v and_o last_o of_o all_o they_o have_v not_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n which_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o that_o curse_a brood_n and_o chain_n of_o sin_n that_o hang_v together_o now_o for_o the_o second_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v a_o divine_a heavenly_a invisible_a and_o supernatural_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n child_n in_o beget_v they_o anew_o into_o the_o glorious_a image_n of_o christ_n by_o change_v into_o another_o quality_n and_o condition_n all_o the_o power_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v do_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o outward_a man_n and_o by_o peace_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o inner_a man_n by_o reason_n whereof_o the_o elect_n be_v say_v even_o in_o this_o prison_n of_o they_o to_o be_v spiritual_a from_o hence_o observe_v first_o that_o the_o world_n be_v divide_v but_o into_o two_o kind_n of_o people_n fleshly_a and_o spiritual_a for_o there_o be_v no_o mean_a between_o they_o &_o howsoever_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n be_v distract_v into_o several_a and_o sundry_a faction_n some_o deny_v the_o power_n of_o godliness_n through_o porfanenesse_n some_o divide_v the_o power_n of_o it_o through_o opinion_n of_o merit_n some_o think_v there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o and_o some_o imagine_v he_o sit_v idle_a in_o heaven_n without_o have_v any_o stern_a to_o guide_v and_o direct_v the_o frame_n of_o the_o earth_n yet_o do_v they_o all_o err_v alike_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o be_v all_o out_o of_o the_o way_n they_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o reward_n of_o their_o worldly_a wisdom_n and_o their_o end_n to_o be_v damnation_n now_o these_o two_o sort_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n be_v easy_o discern_v for_o by_o their_o fruit_n you_o shall_v know_v they_o the_o one_o savour_v the_o flesh_n pot_n of_o aegyt_n the_o other_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n the_o one_o be_v take_v up_o and_o possess_v by_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n the_o other_o strive_v and_o labour_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o one_o have_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v always_o under_o his_o nose_n savour_v nothing_o else_o the_o other_o have_v the_o spirit_n ever_o in_o his_o eye_n to_o divert_v his_o foot_n from_o the_o snare_n and_o pleasure_n of_o concupiscence_n for_o by_o this_o word_n after_o which_o be_v in_o the_o text_n be_v signify_v in_o the_o original_a tongue_n to_o be_v guide_v and_o conduct_v and_o lead_v by_o the_o flesh_n which_o show_v our_o great_a infidelity_n in_o not_o believe_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v down_o give_v it_o here_o in_o precise_a commandment_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o flesh_n and_o bind_v this_o commandment_n in_o the_o breach_n of_o it_o with_o a_o peremptory_a curse_n of_o damnation_n for_o be_v guide_v by_o it_o and_o yet_o as_o if_o god_n can_v not_o make_v his_o word_n good_a or_o that_o we_o can_v wrestle_v ourselves_o from_o his_o wrath_n our_o taste_n our_o smell_n and_o all_o our_o sense_n be_v busy_v only_o in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o if_o we_o will_v cast_v away_o ourselves_o willing_o whereas_o even_o in_o natural_a reason_n we_o shall_v abhor_v it_o for_o who_o will_v be_v conduct_v by_o such_o a_o one_o as_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o all_o he_o guide_v or_o who_o be_v he_o that_o travel_v towards_o the_o desert_n will_v pick_v out_o such_o a_o guide_n as_o shall_v lead_v he_o to_o be_v devour_v of_o wild_a beast_n or_o who_o that_o have_v his_o journey_n by_o sea_n will_v make_v choice_n of_o such_o a_o pilot_n as_o have_v cast_v away_o as_o many_o as_o he_o conduct_v or_o who_o will_v entertain_v a_o know_a thief_n and_o a_o waster_n to_o be_v the_o steward_n of_o his_o house_n or_o who_o will_v take_v such_o a_o husband_n to_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o her_o youth_n as_o spend_v and_o waste_v himself_o in_o licentiousness_n or_o what_o prince_n will_v admit_v he_o to_o be_v his_o chief_a counsellor_n that_o be_v a_o know_a traitor_n to_o his_o person_n or_o such_o a_o one_o to_o be_v captain_n over_o soldier_n as_o be_v a_o know_v and_o proclaim_v rebel_n there_o be_v none_o so_o simple_a nor_o so_o profane_a but_o will_v dislike_v and_o detest_v the_o choice_n of_o any_o such_o guide_n and_o leader_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o take_v his_o flesh_n to_o be_v his_o captain_n his_o arm_n &_o his_o guide_n a_o know_v and_o unreconcilable_a enemy_n to_o the_o soul_n shall_v by_o the_o conduct_n of_o his_o own_o corruption_n not_o only_o lose_v his_o body_n but_o his_o soul_n also_o for_o if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a both_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o perdition_n therefore_o let_v the_o world_n love_v she_o own_o and_o the_o flesh_n pamper_v itself_o let_v cain_n build_v he_o a_o city_n gen._n 4.17_o to_o hide_v he_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n let_v esau_n follow_v his_o hunt_n gen._n 26.30_o to_o satisfy_v his_o pleasure_n in_o the_o death_n of_o venison_n let_v nimrod_n gen._n 11.4_o build_v he_o a_o tower_n to_o get_v he_o a_o name_n upon_o the_o earth_n let_v the_o rich_a man_n luk._n 12.17_o heap_v up_o his_o fruit_n till_o his_o barn_n will_v hold_v no_o more_o let_v dives_fw-la luk._n 16_o 19.20_o be_v costly_a in_o his_o apparel_n and_o delicate_a in_o his_o fare_n every_o day_n yet_o observe_v thou_o but_o their_o end_n and_o thou_o will_v not_o join_v hand_n with_o they_o for_o cain_n be_v brand_v of_o the_o lord_n as_o a_o castaway_n nimrod_n confound_v for_o his_o pride_n esau_n reject_v for_o his_o profaneness_n the_o rich_a man_n snatch_v sudden_o from_o his_o substance_n and_o dives_fw-la throw_v down_o to_o hell_n where_o he_o lie_v pant_v and_o cri_v for_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n and_o can_v have_v it_o again_o in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v they_o savour_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o flesh_n observe_v that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o a_o natural_a and_o carnal_a man_n and_o come_v from_o he_o be_v but_o flesh_n that_o be_v sin_n yea_o and_o the_o most_o excellent_a part_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v his_o wisdom_n deserve_v death_n and_o be_v but_o as_o a_o worm_n in_o the_o shell_n to_o consume_v he_o for_o he_o want_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o foul_a be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n his_o soul_n his_o body_n his_o mind_n his_o will_n and_o his_o understanding_n be_v but_o member_n as_o paul_n
by_o the_o mass_n that_o most_o execrable_a idol_n and_o say_v it_o be_v swear_v out_o of_o the_o country_n can_v a_o man_n think_v himself_o rich_a that_o be_v indebt_v to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o have_v nothing_o wherewithal_o to_o pay_v they_o and_o can_v such_o man_n that_o be_v very_a beast_n and_o without_o sense_n before_o god_n esteem_v themselves_o virtuous_a and_o religious_a because_o they_o be_v only_o high_o praise_v of_o man_n they_o see_v not_o their_o own_o estate_n because_o they_o have_v not_o examine_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o former_a rule_n when_o a_o man_n have_v sweep_v his_o chamber_n he_o think_v all_o be_v clean_o but_o when_o the_o sun_n come_v it_o show_v many_o a_o mote_n he_o can_v not_o before_o spy_v out_o so_o if_o the_o spirit_n will_v once_o shine_v into_o these_o man_n conscience_n they_o shall_v see_v not_o only_a mote_n but_o most_o deform_a and_o enormous_a sin_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o how_o frivolous_a be_v it_o to_o stand_v upon_o man_n witness_n without_o religion_n which_o pierce_v and_o look_v into_o the_o soul_n for_o otherwise_o he_o that_o think_v himself_o in_o best_a health_n carry_v his_o death_n wound_n in_o his_o bosom_n the_o base_a gold_n be_v better_a than_o the_o pure_a lead_v and_o the_o great_a imperfection_n of_o god_n child_n better_a than_o the_o high_a virtue_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o never_o shall_v they_o be_v exalt_v that_o have_v not_o before_o be_v humble_v the_o law_n be_v a_o hammer_n not_o only_o to_o bruise_v the_o conscience_n but_o to_o break_v it_o into_o powder_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v we_o shall_v never_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n to_o seize_v upon_o us._n the_o law_n command_v but_o give_v no_o power_n to_o obey_v and_o be_v as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v to_o a_o beggar_n buy_v such_o a_o manor_n when_o he_o have_v never_o a_o penny_n to_o help_v himself_o nor_o yet_o we_o give_v he_o any_o money_n to_o do_v it_o even_o so_o purchase_v heaven_n with_o thy_o work_n say_v the_o law_n and_o yet_o know_v we_o be_v spoil_v of_o all_o ability_n and_o do_v not_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v such_o work_n all_o one_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v to_o one_o hold_v up_o the_o heaven_n with_o thy_o finger_n and_o yet_o give_v he_o no_o strength_n to_o do_v it_o or_o as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v to_o the_o blind_a see_v it_o be_v comfortable_a and_o to_o the_o deaf_a hear_v it_o be_v profitable_a and_o yet_o give_v they_o no_o mean_n whereby_o they_o shall_v do_v these_o so_o the_o law_n be_v but_o a_o dead_a letter_n and_o have_v but_o a_o doleful_a and_o dreadful_a sound_n until_o the_o spirit_n come_v and_o arm_v we_o with_o power_n and_o ability_n to_o perform_v what_o the_o law_n require_v last_o where_o it_o be_v say_v 15.21_o luk._n 15.21_o you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o observe_v that_o all_o that_o be_v convert_v and_o with_o the_o lose_a son_n be_v come_v home_o again_o have_v be_v once_o bring_v to_o a_o terror_n and_o fright_v of_o conscience_n which_o have_v be_v after_o a_o diverse_a measure_n for_o the_o lord_n keep_v some_o long_a in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o law_n then_o he_o do_v other_o according_a as_o he_o find_v their_o heart_n and_o disposition_n inclinable_a to_o stoop_v and_o to_o be_v humble_v or_o else_o for_o example_n sake_n as_o seem_v best_a to_o the_o lord_n but_o yet_o every_o one_o of_o god_n chidren_n must_v come_v to_o this_o that_o be_v act._n 2.37_o be_v move_v and_o prick_v in_o conscience_n to_o say_v and_o cry_v out_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o be_v save_v i_o see_v my_o debt_n where_o shall_v i_o get_v surety_n i_o perceive_v my_o nakedness_n where_o shall_v i_o be_v cover_v i_o be_o fall_v how_o shall_v i_o be_v recover_v and_o be_v touch_v in_o their_o heart_n if_o they_o fall_v not_o into_o that_o exclamation_n then_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o ely_n his_o son_n 1._o sam._n 2.25_o they_o obey_v not_o because_o the_o lord_n will_v slay_v they_o so_o for_o these_o man_n to_o be_v bake_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o see_v their_o destruction_n and_o not_o to_o shun_v it_o and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o despair_v final_o be_v the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v be_v avenge_v of_o their_o great_a hypocrisy_n for_o mercy_n offer_v and_o refuse_v or_o set_v light_n by_o double_v the_o punishment_n even_o as_o in_o this_o nation_n by_o the_o bless_a preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n satan_n be_v cast_v out_o in_o the_o general_a profession_n of_o the_o land_n if_o now_o he_o labour_v to_o creep_v in_o again_o by_o hypocrisy_n and_o make_v we_o think_v religion_n to_o rest_v in_o show_n and_o consist_v in_o ceremony_n grow_v more_o lean_a and_o ill-favoured_a after_o we_o have_v devour_v so_o many_o year_n of_o store_n and_o plenty_n in_o preach_v the_o word_n we_o do_v err_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o do_v arm_v our_o enemy_n against_o we_o who_o at_o his_o reentrance_n will_v bring_v seven_o spirit_n worse_o than_o he_o do_v before_o 11.25_o luk._n 11.25_o and_o will_v so_o fortify_v his_o habitation_n with_o hypocrisy_n and_o other_o great_a and_o monstrous_a sin_n as_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o profannesse_n in_o this_o nation_n then_o ever_o there_o be_v before_o but_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n in_o this_o the_o apostle_n prove_v that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o we_o be_v so_o adopt_v in_o the_o everlasting_a grace_n of_o his_o bless_a son_n and_o to_o prove_v we_o have_v this_o spirit_n he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o contrary_a thus_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o fear_n and_o redeem_v into_o such_o a_o christian_a liberty_n as_o we_o now_o love_v god_n not_o for_o fear_v but_o fear_v he_o for_o his_o love_n in_o this_o there_o be_v two_o part_n to_o be_v consider_v first_o what_o this_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n be_v second_o the_o inseparable_a effect_n that_o follow_v it_o namely_o a_o assure_a confidence_n to_o come_v bold_o before_o the_o lord_n even_o as_o child_n before_o their_o parent_n to_o crave_v pardon_n for_o our_o sin_n for_o the_o first_o this_o spirit_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n assure_v we_o by_o the_o word_n of_o grace_n that_o be_v the_o gospel_n that_o the_o lord_n have_v avow_a we_o for_o his_o child_n in_o that_o one_o and_o best_a belove_a son_n of_o his_o christ_n jesus_n so_o that_o no_o extremity_n of_o this_o life_n nor_o sorrow_n of_o death_n nor_o sin_n itself_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o over_o whelm_v us._n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n set_v a_o seal_n upon_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o elect_a 1.13_o ephes_n 1.13_o and_o write_v a_o deed_n in_o their_o conscience_n which_o be_v but_o a_o draught_n of_o that_o original_a deed_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o lord_n government_n and_o this_o be_v seal_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o finger_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o free_v it_o from_o the_o forgery_n of_o satan_n and_o by_o this_o evidence_n we_o make_v our_o title_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 5.5_o ●_o cor._n 5.5_o also_o it_o be_v call_v a_o earnest_a penny_n because_o as_o in_o contract_n by_o give_v a_o penny_n in_o earnest_a the_o party_n be_v oblige_v and_o bind_v to_o pay_v the_o rest_n so_o this_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o lord_n do_v assure_v we_o that_o as_o very_o as_o we_o have_v receive_v thus_o much_o in_o hand_n in_o this_o vale_n of_o misery_n so_o this_o shall_v be_v a_o pawn_n and_o pledge_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o fu●●e●●●_n 〈◊〉_d be_v glory_n under_o which_o assurance_n we_o rest_v and_o lie_v down_o in_o hope_n with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o as_o the_o first_o fruit_n in_o the_o law_n make_v the_o whole_a crop_n holy_a so_o this_o spark_n of_o the_o lord_n grace_n be_v kindle_v and_o set_v on_o fire_n in_o we_o do_v embolden_v we_o to_o a_o expectation_n of_o the_o full_a enjoy_n of_o our_o whole_a lord_n christ_n jesus_n this_o testimony_n oft_o time_n be_v very_o weak_a especial_o when_o satan_n do_v sift_v and_o winnow_v we_o as_o he_o do_v peter_n 17.5_o luk._n 17.5_o so_o as_o we_o have_v need_v to_o pray_v with_o the_o disciple_n lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n yet_o as_o a_o prisoner_n in_o a_o dark_a dungeon_n see_v but_o the_o sun_n at_o a_o little_a grate_n do_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o sun_n shine_v upon_o the_o whole_a earth_n so_o though_o we_o be_v shackle_a and_o imprison_v in_o this_o flesh_n as_o in_o a_o dungeon_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o
by_o the_o same_o round_n that_o he_o do_v if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o not_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o the_o world_n whereby_o understand_v and_o learn_v that_o all_o that_o be_v afflict_v shall_v not_o be_v save_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a none_o shall_v be_v save_v unless_o they_o be_v afflict_v for_o a_o man_n may_v suffer_v all_o the_o plague_n to_o be_v devise_v on_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o after_o go_v to_o hell_n to_o suffer_v more_o some_o suffer_v with_o the_o world_n such_o as_o peter_n speak_v of_o 1._o pet._n 2.20_o that_o be_v buffet_v for_o their_o demerit_n and_o misdeed_n on_o who_o the_o lord_n do_v satisfy_v part_n of_o his_o justice_n in_o this_o life_n these_o be_v poor_a in_o the_o ●esh_n but_o proud_a in_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o misery_n they_o sustain_v can_v nothing_o humble_v they_o unless_o perhaps_o sometime_o they_o will_v weep_v for_o curse_a heart_n as_o esau_n do_v when_o he_o lose_v the_o blessing_n 27.38_o gen._n 27.38_o but_o they_o be_v so_o harden_v in_o obstinacy_n as_o they_o be_v pass_v fear_v the_o heaviness_n and_o weight_n of_o the_o lord_n displeasure_n so_o as_o there_o be_v a_o worldly_a affliction_n that_o lead_v to_o death_n as_o well_o as_o a_o godly_a suffering_n that_o prepare_v the_o way_n to_o life_n now_o again_o some_o suffer_v with_o christ_n and_o such_o be_v they_o as_o suffer_v either_o to_o profit_v by_o the_o lord_n affliction_n as_o that_o they_o be_v send_v as_o chastisement_n to_o reclaim_v they_o from_o some_o sin_n past_a and_o so_o they_o amend_v or_o else_o as_o preseruative_n against_o some_o sin_n to_o come_v and_o so_o they_o be_v make_v more_o watchful_a or_o else_o if_o we_o suffer_v for_o the_o gospel_n because_o we_o will_v not_o communicate_v with_o the_o world_n now_o though_o all_o affliction_n ought_v to_o be_v esteem_v just_a in_o respect_n of_o our_o infirmity_n yet_o sometime_o the_o lord_n regard_v not_o this_o alone_a but_o make_v it_o more_o honourable_a as_o when_o we_o be_v trouble_v for_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o be_v but_o vile_a worm_n and_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n shall_v either_o with_o loss_n of_o good_n which_o be_v but_o lend_v we_o or_o with_o our_o life_n which_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v the_o lord_n of_o heaven_n some_o honour_n to_o maintain_v his_o truth_n against_o such_o as_o do_v malign_v it_o that_o the_o wicked_a may_v see_v we_o strive_v for_o a_o more_o precious_a reward_n than_o be_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o mortal_a man_n we_o shall_v be_v glorify_v with_o he_o we_o will_v think_v it_o a_o small_a honour_n for_o flesh_n and_o blood_n to_o suffer_v with_o christ_n for_o company_n and_o to_o stay_v there_o therefore_o observe_v hence_o by_o the_o apostle_n speech_n that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o look_v and_o to_o fix_v our_o eye_n on_o the_o beginning_n of_o affliction_n but_o to_o regard_v the_o end_n that_o patience_n may_v have_v her_o full_a perfection_n look_v not_o upon_o lazarus_n beg_v at_o dives_fw-la door_n but_o lie_v in_o abraham_n bosom_n look_v not_o to_o the_o begin_n of_o joseph_n 16.22_o luk._n 16.22_o who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o his_o dream_n genes_n 37.9_o that_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n shall_v reverence_v he_o that_o for_o two_o year_n he_o be_v cast_v where_o he_o can_v see_v neither_o sun_n nor_o moon_n but_o behold_v he_o at_o the_o last_o make_v ruler_n over_o all_o egypt_n 24.1_o 1._o sam._n 24.1_o look_v not_o upon_o david_n as_o there_o be_v but_o a_o step_n between_o he_o and_o death_n his_o life_n be_v so_o thirst_v after_o nor_o as_o he_o be_v abuse_v by_o saul_n flatterer_n 2.2.10_o 1._o king_n 2.2.10_o but_o behold_v he_o feat_v in_o his_o royal_a throne_n and_o die_v in_o his_o bed_n of_o honour_n with_o his_o son_n solomon_n about_o he_o look_v not_o upon_o christ_n bear_v base_o after_o persecute_v from_o jerusalem_n when_o he_o come_v to_o teach_v encounter_v and_o resist_v by_o the_o proud_a pharisee_n a_o little_a before_o his_o death_n in_o such_o a_o agony_n as_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n be_v fain_o to_o comfort_v he_o 22.43_o luk._n 22.43_o his_o doctrine_n esteem_v false_a his_o life_n notorious_o sinful_a betray_v by_o his_o own_o disciple_n lead_v as_o a_o sheep_n to_o the_o slaughter_n a_o man_n without_o blemish_n and_o yet_o as_o the_o prophet_n esay_n speak_v 23.26_o esay_n 53.2_o luk._n 23.26_o a_o branch_n arise_v from_o a_o dead_a stock_n carry_v a_o cross_n under_o which_o he_o be_v so_o distress_v as_o another_o be_v fain_o to_o ease_v he_o go_v up_o to_o the_o cross_n nail_v hand_n and_o foot_n scoff_v and_o revile_v as_o he_o be_v upon_o it_o cry_v as_o if_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n have_v burst_v forth_o upon_o he_o behold_v he_o in_o this_o estate_n and_o there_o be_v never_o any_o creature_n so_o miserable_a at_o last_o carry_v as_o a_o dead_a man_n lay_v in_o a_o grave_n not_o only_o dead_a but_o three_o day_n under_o the_o dominion_n of_o death_n so_o as_o his_o apostle_n flee_v and_o the_o devil_n think_v all_o have_v be_v quiet_a but_o afterward_o behold_v he_o raise_v up_o again_o ascend_v to_o the_o heaven_n 24.51_o mark_n 16.19_o luk._n 24.51_o than_o he_o become_v head_n of_o angel_n than_o a_o dead_a man_n by_o a_o few_o fisherman_n conquer_v all_o the_o world_n so_o as_o emperor_n submit_v their_o ●●ownes_n and_o seek_v their_o salvation_n in_o 〈◊〉_d cross_n of_o christ_n so_o we_o must_v look_v upon_o the_o martyr_n who_o die_v in_o their_o holiness_n and_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o their_o holiness_n not_o as_o have_v reed_n in_o their_o hand_n in_o sign_n of_o baseness_n and_o bolt_n on_o their_o foot_n and_o stripe_n on_o their_o back_n as_o evil_a doer_n but_o as_o renelat_n 7.9_o stand_v before_o the_o throne_n and_o before_o the_o lamb_n with_o palm_n in_o their_o hand_n in_o token_n of_o victory_n array_v in_o white_a robe_n in_o sign_n of_o innocency_n and_o in_o long_a robe_n in_o sign_n of_o stateliness_n for_o these_o be_v they_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o come_v out_o of_o tribulation_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n will_v dwell_v among_o they_o we_o must_v therefore_o always_o bend_v our_o thought_n and_o set_v our_o eye_n not_o upon_o the_o present_a affliction_n which_o be_v tedious_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o upon_o the_o end_n and_o success_n which_o shall_v bring_v spiritual_a consolation_n not_o upon_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v wearisome_a but_o upon_o the_o crown_n which_o be_v delightsome_a not_o upon_o the_o race_n which_o be_v long_o and_o crooked_a but_o upon_o the_o prize_n which_o be_v weighty_a and_o precious_a not_o upon_o the_o combat_n which_o may_v be_v to_o the_o blood_n but_o upon_o the_o conquest_n which_o shall_v be_v certain_a and_o glorious_a and_o if_o we_o can_v subdue_v our_o affection_n true_o to_o this_o meditation_n all_o our_o trouble_n in_o the_o great_a extremity_n shall_v seem_v light_a and_o we_o shall_v go_v from_o the_o whip_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v with_o more_o rejoice_v than_o we_o have_v before_o 5.41_o act._n 5.41_o because_o we_o may_v be_v sure_a our_o end_n shall_v be_v bless_v for_o if_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o we_o shall_v be_v glorify_v with_o he_o now_o for_o the_o glory_n here_o speak_v of_o it_o be_v not_o comparable_a with_o the_o sorrow_n we_o sustain_v here_o for_o this_o glory_n be_v eternal_a whereas_o affliction_n be_v but_o temporal_a not_o possible_a to_o be_v conceive_v in_o heart_n nor_o utter_v by_o speech_n it_o be_v in_o show_v beautiful_a in_o sense_n wonderful_a in_o weight_n excessive_a in_o measure_n without_o bound_n in_o dignity_n without_o comparison_n and_o in_o continuance_n without_o end_n ●●●●ea_o it_o be_v such_o and_o so_o great_a that_o as_o one_o torment_n in_o hell_n shall_v make_v a_o reprobate_n forget_v his_o worldly_a pleasure_n so_o the_o least_o taste_n you_o one_o drop_n of_o this_o glory_n shall_v make_v the_o heir_n of_o god_n forget_v all_o their_o misery_n and_o for_o their_o single_a and_o temporary_a affliction_n here_o they_o shall_v have_v double_a and_o infinite_a joy_n in_o heaven_n rom_n chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 18._o verse_n 18_o for_o i_o count_v that_o the_o affliction_n of_o this_o present_a time_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o glory_n which_o shall_v be_v show_v unto_o us._n in_o this_o verse_n the_o apostle_n proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o set_v down_o before_o namely_o that_o be_v companion_n in_o christ_n his_o suffering_n we_o shall_v also_o be_v copartner_n with_o he_o in_o the_o bless_a light_n he_o prove_v it_o can_v be_v no_o small_a glory_n we_o shall_v partake_v of_o since_o it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o christ_n himself_o enjoy_v always_o keep_v the_o correspondency_n and_o
exceed_v all_o number_n and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o our_o thought_n to_o reach_v or_o to_o conceive_v any_o end_n of_o it_o for_o this_o glory_n be_v like_o god_n the_o giver_n of_o it_o that_o must_v be_v embrace_v for_o the_o excellency_n of_o it_o and_o thirst_v after_o for_o the_o eternity_n of_o it_o now_o as_o the_o apostle_n here_o persuade_v the_o necessity_n and_o yield_v the_o reason_n for_o patience_n in_o our_o affliction_n 10.35_o heb._n 10.35_o by_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o wait_v upon_o we_o as_o the_o just_a recompense_n of_o our_o reward_n so_o must_v we_o learn_v to_o dissuade_v from_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o greatness_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o torment_n that_o wait_v on_o they_o and_o this_o standch_n in_o two_o point_n the_o first_o be_v call_v sensus_fw-la poenae_fw-la the_o feeling_n and_o smart_n of_o punishment_n which_o be_v aggravate_v and_o make_v heavy_a in_o three_o respect_n first_o in_o the_o universality_n of_o it_o that_o no_o part_n shall_v be_v free_a from_o torment_n but_o every_o joint_n in_o thy_o body_n and_o every_o power_n of_o thy_o soul_n shall_v be_v pain_v and_o vex_v which_o be_v not_o so_o in_o this_o life_n save_v only_o in_o a_o fellow-feeling_n of_o one_o member_n with_o another_o for_o never_o any_o man_n be_v torment_v in_o all_o the_o singular_a part_n of_o his_o body_n at_o one_o instant_a second_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o it_o that_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v torment_v in_o all_o part_n at_o one_o time_n and_o that_o continual_o so_o one_o damn_a spirit_n shall_v be_v vex_v more_o than_o another_o for_o as_o there_o be_v here_o degree_n of_o sin_n so_o shall_v there_o be_v hereafter_o degree_n of_o smart_n and_o punishment_n as_o christ_n speak_v of_o jerusalem_n say_v it_o shall_v be_v easy_a for_o sodme_v then_o for_o this_o city_n and_o yet_o sodom_n be_v in_o hell_n three_o in_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o 11.23_o mat._n 11.23_o the_o greatness_n of_o this_o their_o torment_n be_v much_o increase_v in_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o mean_n to_o ease_v and_o lift_v up_o or_o relieve_v themselves_o for_o they_o shall_v be_v bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n that_o they_o can_v stir_v as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o usage_n of_o he_o that_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n feast_n without_o his_o wedding_n garment_n and_o for_o the_o eternity_n of_o their_o torment_n 22.13_o mat._n 22.13_o if_o they_o shall_v suffer_v no_o more_o year_n than_o there_o be_v creature_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v some_o comfort_n because_o they_o may_v espy_v some_o light_n of_o deliverance_n but_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o heaven_n and_o when_o god_n shall_v leave_v to_o be_v god_n and_o to_o lose_v his_o glory_n than_o the_o damn_a ghost_n shall_v be_v ease_v the_o second_o aggravation_n of_o their_o punishment_n be_v in_o this_o damno_fw-la loci_fw-la in_o the_o loss_n of_o heaven_n for_o it_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o vex_v they_o that_o they_o be_v torment_v as_o that_o they_o have_v lose_v those_o joy_n they_o see_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n enjoy_v this_o shall_v make_v they_o murmur_v and_o gnash_v their_o tooth_n and_o upon_o their_o apprehension_n and_o conceave_a of_o that_o they_o have_v lose_v shall_v follow_v the_o remorse_n and_o sting_n of_o conscience_n that_o in_o their_o life_n time_n they_o despise_v to_o labour_v in_o mortification_n and_o newness_n of_o life_n for_o there_o be_v none_o damn_v 20.12_o revel_v 20.12_o but_o their_o own_o heart_n shall_v tell_v they_o they_o be_v just_o damn_v verse_n 23._o and_o not_o only_o the_o creature_n but_o we_o also_o which_o have_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n even_o we_o do_v sigh_v in_o ourselves_o wait_v for_o the_o adoption_n even_o the_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n etc._n etc._n to_o the_o 26._o verse_n the_o apostle_n still_o enlarge_v the_o weight_n of_o glory_n speak_v of_o before_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o very_a frame_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o other_o creature_n do_v wait_v for_o the_o restitution_n and_o deliverance_n of_o mankind_n at_o which_o time_n they_o shall_v receive_v their_o original_a excellency_n now_o paul_n use_v a_o argument_n from_o the_o less_o to_o the_o great_a that_o if_o the_o beast_n and_o other_o insensible_a thing_n which_o be_v accurse_v and_o subject_a to_o this_o corruption_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o bondage_n whereinto_o man_n by_o his_o fall_n be_v enthral_v and_o cast_v into_o do_v labour_n as_o it_o be_v in_o travel_n till_o man_n be_v glorify_v and_o themselves_o for_o our_o sake_n restore_v then_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v we_o wait_v for_o the_o revelation_n of_o this_o glory_n we_o that_o be_v seal_v with_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o which_o in_o the_o gospel_n may_v behold_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o glass_n a_o great_a glimce_n and_o show_v of_o this_o glory_n sigh_v after_o and_o wait_v for_o this_o great_a and_o glorious_a day_n not_o that_o we_o shall_v wish_v simple_o to_o be_v unclothe_v but_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2._o cor._n 5.2.3_o to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o with_o our_o house_n from_o heaven_n and_o not_o so_o much_o that_o ourselves_o may_v die_v as_o that_o sin_n may_v be_v extinguish_v and_o our_o sanctification_n perfect_v howbeit_o in_o this_o affection_n of_o we_o there_o must_v be_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o sigh_v and_o groan_v the_o second_o a_o patient_a wait_a for_o that_o we_o hope_v for_o where_o consider_v what_o that_o be_v we_o wait_v for_o and_o sigh_v for_o the_o apostle_n here_o call_v it_o adoption_n that_o be_v the_o accomplishment_n of_o that_o glory_n whereto_o we_o be_v in_o christ_n adopt_v or_o as_o himself_o expound_v it_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n even_o as_o david_n be_v king_n when_o he_o be_v anoint_v but_o he_o stay_v long_o for_o the_o real_a possession_n of_o it_o and_o as_o abraham_n have_v the_o land_n of_o canaan_n give_v he_o which_o be_v perform_v 400._o year_n after_o in_o wait_v and_o expect_v for_o this_o redemption_n observe_v and_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n and_o ground_n that_o howsoever_o the_o philosopher_n have_v dream_v of_o a_o simple_a immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n alone_o yet_o that_o we_o know_v and_o learn_v that_o except_o the_o body_n which_o we_o bear_v about_o we_o be_v restore_v also_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v abolish_v otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o lame_a and_o imperfect_a restitution_n and_o otherwise_o in_o vain_a have_v job_n say_v chap._n 19.26_o though_o after_o my_o skin_n worm_n destroy_v this_o body_n yet_o shall_v i_o see_v god_n in_o my_o flesh_n that_o be_v body_n and_o soul_n at_o the_o last_o day_n which_o be_v also_o plain_o express_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o word_n redemption_n of_o the_o body_n further_o observe_v hence_o the_o dulness_n &_o blockishness_n of_o man_n that_o be_v to_o take_v example_n and_o to_o be_v teach_v his_o duty_n even_o of_o the_o insensible_a creature_n who_o in_o their_o kind_n by_o the_o very_a instinct_n of_o nature_n can_v groan_v for_o the_o day_n of_o man_n redemption_n and_o yet_o man_n himself_o though_o spur_v on_o and_o provoke_v can_v hardly_o be_v draw_v to_o that_o duty_n which_o may_v teach_v every_o one_o of_o we_o to_o be_v more_o watchful_a in_o our_o christian_a exercise_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o know_v and_o desire_v to_o approach_v near_o the_o day_n of_o our_o redemption_n lest_o the_o creature_n that_o want_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n rise_v up_o against_o we_o to_o condemn_v we_o for_o they_o fail_v nothing_o so_o much_o in_o their_o duty_n as_o man_n do_v 30.25_o pro._n 30.25_o nay_o solomon_n send_v the_o sluggard_n to_o the_o ant_n and_o pismire_n who_o by_o his_o sommer-labour_n provide_v for_o a_o hard_a and_o stormy_a winter_n christ_n will_v have_v we_o learn_v innocency_n of_o the_o dove_n and_o wisdom_n and_o providence_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o apostle_n here_o will_v not_o have_v a_o christian_a man_n short_a of_o the_o creature_n who_o tramell_o in_o pain_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n into_o the_o glorious_a liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o must_v we_o sigh_v for_o this_o redemption_n of_o our_o body_n wherein_o we_o ourselves_o have_v the_o great_a interest_n further_o in_o that_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o do_v sigh_v in_o ourselves_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v touch_v at_o the_o hart_n and_o to_o be_v prick_v in_o his_o conscience_n as_o general_o for_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o particular_o and_o more_o narow_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n for_o these_o be_v they_o whereby_o
god_n be_v dishonour_v and_o therefore_o thou_o must_v not_o slight_o wish_v or_o earnest_o pray_v for_o though_o this_o be_v well_o do_v a_o change_n of_o this_o corruption_n and_o a_o restitution_n both_o of_o the_o creature_n and_o of_o man_n their_o head_n into_o the_o state_n of_o blessedness_n and_o incorruption_n but_o thou_o must_v even_o in_o a_o corner_n by_o thyself_o break_v forth_o as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o passion_n of_o affection_n with_o sigh_n and_o groan_n even_o such_o as_o may_v fill_v the_o heaven_n to_o wait_v after_o and_o to_o thirst_n for_o that_o day_n wherein_o god_n shall_v triumph_v in_o the_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n of_o all_o glory_n and_o wherein_o man_n shall_v stand_v and_o continue_v in_o a_o incomprehensible_a degreee_v of_o happiness_n but_o alas_o we_o be_v so_o entangle_v with_o the_o bait_n and_o net_n of_o this_o vain_a world_n that_o our_o affection_n sway_v we_o to_o a_o clean_a contrary_a course_n think_v our_o foot_n be_v never_o sure_a enough_o nor_o have_v hold_n enough_o on_o the_o earth_n so_o pleasant_a do_v we_o esteem_v our_o habitation_n here_o that_o we_o will_v think_v ourselves_o most_o happy_a though_o heaven_n be_v never_o our_o inheritance_n if_o we_o may_v always_o live_v here_o compass_v about_o and_o environ_v with_o these_o false_a delight_n which_o do_v too_o much_o bewray_v our_o want_n and_o defect_n in_o meditation_n on_o heaven_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o show_v what_o a_o scantling_n we_o keep_v in_o christianity_n outward_o only_a to_o profess_v it_o and_o never_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o chamber_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o see_v whether_o it_o be_v furnish_v with_o such_o holy_a christian_n and_o religious_a sigh_n and_o groan_n as_o set_v forth_o &_o commend_v the_o affection_n of_o such_o a_o christian_a as_o upon_o the_o comparison_n of_o these_o short_a trouble_n with_o that_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n which_o shall_v come_v have_v already_o plant_v his_o heart_n in_o heaven_n last_o observe_v hence_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o the_o reprobate_n but_o it_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o elect_a only_o to_o lift_v up_o their_o head_n in_o hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o this_o redemption_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o two_o phrase_n and_o speech_n here_o use_v namely_o that_o such_o sigh_n as_o first_o have_v receive_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n second_o such_o as_o wait_v for_o adoption_n neither_o of_o which_o do_v ever_o befall_v the_o reprobate_n for_o they_o may_v spring_v up_o and_o flourish_v for_o a_o time_n but_o they_o have_v no_o root_n nor_o take_v no_o sap_n from_o the_o spirit_n and_o happy_o they_o may_v be_v weary_a of_o the_o world_n 4.13_o gen._n 4.13_o as_o cain_n be_v of_o his_o punishment_n by_o they_o have_v no_o anchor_n of_o any_o other_o hope_n unless_o they_o joy_v to_o go_v to_o hell_n which_o ought_v to_o move_v we_o with_o all_o heedfulness_n to_o look_v to_o our_o way_n and_o to_o labour_v our_o engraft_v into_o christ_n for_o the_o world_n pass_v 1.11_o heb._n 1.11_o and_o both_o it_o and_o we_o be_v fold_v up_o as_o a_o garment_n and_o to_o dust_n we_o must_v and_o yet_o out_o of_o dust_n we_o must_v arise_v and_o if_o while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o body_n we_o can_v be_v burden_v and_o sigh_v that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n then_o be_v we_o most_o happy_a and_o happy_a in_o that_o alone_a but_o if_o thou_o find_v thyself_o empty_a of_o such_o affection_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o sigh_v for_o thy_o redemption_n which_o show_v thou_o do_v not_o hope_v for_o thy_o salvation_n than_o be_v thou_o of_o all_o man_n the_o most_o miserable_a and_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o beast_n be_v better_a than_o thou_o for_o they_o sigh_v for_o the_o liberty_n of_o god_n son_n and_o they_o shall_v have_v part_n in_o this_o blessedness_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v it_o and_o then_o shall_v moan_v thyself_o thou_o want_v it_o 10.18.19_o job_n 10.18.19_o for_o if_o the_o earth_n may_v be_v thy_o grave_n and_o thou_o may_v perish_v in_o the_o dust_n thou_o may_v yet_o conceive_v happiness_n in_o senselessness_n after_o this_o life_n end_v for_o we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n in_o this_o the_o apostle_n proceed_v to_o prove_v that_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o a_o christian_n to_o groan_v so_o be_v it_o also_o to_o wait_v for_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n which_o he_o do_v after_o this_o sort_n we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n that_o be_v all_o our_o salvation_n stand_v and_o consist_v in_o hope_n for_o hope_n apprehend_v and_o lay_v hold_v on_o thing_n absent_a and_o invisible_a 13.12_o heb._n 11.1_o ephe._n 3.9_o pro._n 13.12_o according_a to_o that_o speech_n our_o life_n be_v hide_v in_o christ_n that_o be_v so_o hide_v as_o it_o will_v be_v find_v though_o as_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o see_v now_o hope_v that_o be_v defer_v must_v needs_o as_o solomon_n say_v be_v the_o faint_a of_o the_o heart_n and_o therefore_o for_o fear_v of_o this_o faint_a the_o apostle_n releeve_v our_o hope_n with_o patience_n where_o we_o learn_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o minister_n to_o salve_v up_o all_o breach_n and_o to_o resolve_v all_o doubt_n that_o any_o way_n may_v perplex_v the_o heart_n and_o soul_n of_o a_o weak_a christian_a after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n here_o who_o to_o relieve_v the_o infirmity_n of_o the_o faithful_a against_o the_o storm_n of_o affliction_n set_v before_o they_o the_o crown_n of_o glory_n which_o they_o have_v win_v in_o the_o field_n by_o their_o fight_n and_o because_o this_o glory_n be_v not_o present_a but_o follow_v the_o battle_n and_o when_o the_o combat_n be_v end_v then_o come_v in_o victory_n he_o show_v though_o this_o glory_n and_o reward_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o sight_n yet_o christian_n have_v a_o affection_n in_o they_o which_o be_v hope_n that_o nourish_v and_o stay_v their_o expectation_n for_o a_o time_n the_o heart_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n leap_v and_o be_v establish_v through_o hope_n that_o it_o will_v come_v and_o yet_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v discourage_v in_o their_o hope_n though_o this_o glory_n come_v not_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v look_v for_o he_o give_v they_o the_o plaster_n of_o patience_n which_o shall_v sustain_v and_o support_v their_o hope_n for_o he_o be_v certain_a that_o have_v promise_v but_o not_o to_o be_v prescribe_v a_o time_n by_o we_o but_o he_o must_v take_v his_o own_o time_n and_o our_o patience_n must_v prevent_v all_o distrust_n even_o so_o must_v the_o feeder_n of_o the_o flock_n deal_n with_o their_o people_n in_o all_o case_n of_o doubt_n and_o waner_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n so_o to_o compass_v and_o beset_v the_o soul_n with_o reason_n and_o argument_n as_o it_o may_v rest_v secure_a and_o have_v the_o food_n of_o comfort_n minister_v unto_o they_o against_o all_o doubt_n and_o peril_n that_o may_v arise_v for_o such_o ought_v minister_n to_o be_v 52._o mat._n 13_o 52._o as_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v forth_o of_o their_o treasure_n both_o new_a and_o old_a cure_n and_o remedy_n both_o against_o the_o ancient_a wiliness_n and_o the_o fresh_a and_o new_a subtlety_n and_o temptation_n of_o that_o old_a serpent_n further_o observe_v we_o must_v not_o understand_v this_o speech_n we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n as_o we_o do_v this_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n for_o nothing_o do_v concur_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n with_o god_n above_o but_o faith_n so_o as_o the_o meaning_n and_o sense_n here_o be_v that_o our_o salvation_n consist_v in_o those_o thing_n that_o we_o hope_v for_o and_o it_o be_v better_o tranflate_v we_o be_v save_v in_o hope_n than_o we_o be_v save_v by_o hope_n 11.1_o heb._n 11.1_o for_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o hope_n for_o what_o can_v we_o hope_v for_o unless_o we_o believe_v it_o as_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o word_n and_o promise_n for_o why_o shall_v we_o believe_v but_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n his_o promise_n faith_n tell_v we_o we_o beat_v not_o the_o air_n hope_n bid_v we_o hold_v on_o our_o race_n finish_v the_o course_n fight_v the_o combat_n and_o then_o expect_v the_o crown_n of_o glory_n yea_o faith_n be_v sustain_v by_o hope_n that_o it_o do_v not_o waver_v and_o contain_v by_o hope_n that_o it_o do_v not_o hasten_v but_o wait_v the_o time_n and_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o hope_n that_o we_o may_v hold_v on_o the_o faith_n 15.22_o mat._n 15.22_o example_n of_o this_o we_o see_v and_o have_v in_o the_o canaanitish_a woman_n who_o suffer_v three_o denial_n at_o christ_n his_o hand_n each_o of_o they_o double_v with_o several_a reproach_n and_o yet_o faint_v
sin_n prove_v there_o be_v a_o law_n which_o law_n be_v break_v bring_v death_n for_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n 6.23_o rom._n 6.23_o the_o second_o sort_n be_v of_o they_o who_o though_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o book_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o the_o gentile_n be_v rom._n 1.20_o who_o do_v see_v the_o eternal_a power_n of_o god_n in_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o other_o his_o work_n and_o live_v to_o a_o more_o understand_a age_n be_v even_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n without_o all_o excuse_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o invite_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o die_v in_o their_o sin_n as_o the_o canibale_n barbarian_n and_o the_o jew_n since_o their_o apostasy_n to_o who_o there_o pertain_v nothing_o but_o a_o fearful_a expectation_n of_o judgement_n hereof_o follow_v and_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n from_o eternity_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o than_o it_o be_v his_o will_n likewise_o that_o all_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o salvation_n for_o who_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o the_o end_n they_o have_v he_o also_o ordain_v to_o the_o mean_n whereas_o to_o the_o reprobate_n the_o sound_n of_o the_o word_n if_o they_o do_v hear_v it_o be_v but_o as_o the_o noise_n of_o bell_n confuse_o jar_a in_o their_o ear_n and_o yet_o many_o there_o be_v that_o never_o hear_v it_o why_o but_o it_o be_v say_v 1._o tim._n 2.4_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n all_o shall_v be_v save_v true_a all_o man_n not_o every_o singular_a particular_a man_n but_o of_o every_o singular_a condition_n of_o man_n some_o not_o all_o of_o all_o kind_n but_o of_o all_o kind_n some_o according_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o evangelist_n 4.23_o mat._n 4.23_o christ_n heal_v every_o disease_n in_o jury_n that_o be_v every_o kind_n of_o disease_n not_o every_o particular_a disease_n now_o if_o all_o man_n come_v not_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n either_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n or_o against_o his_o will_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v against_o his_o will_n be_v impious_a and_o blasphemous_a for_o this_o be_v to_o hold_v that_o something_o can_v offer_v violence_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o otherwise_o have_v purpose_v which_o must_v be_v far_o from_o a_o christian_a heart_n to_o imagine_v if_o then_o this_o be_v do_v with_o his_o will_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o his_o will_n be_v changeable_a if_o he_o once_o mean_v to_o save_v they_o for_o we_o see_v some_o even_o like_a dog_n ready_a to_o rend_v they_o in_o piece_n that_o offer_v they_o the_o pearl_n of_o the_o word_n who_o if_o the_o lord_n have_v purpose_v to_o save_v 7.6_o mat._n 7.6_o they_o shall_v not_o continue_v persecutor_n of_o the_o truth_n as_o paul_n say_v of_o himself_o 1._o timoth._n 1.12.13_o it_o please_v christ_n jesus_n to_o put_v i_o in_o his_o service_n be_v before_o a_o blasphemer_n a_o persecuter_n a_o oppressor_n and_o i_o be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n and_o where_o it_o be_v say_v 1._o john_n 2.2_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o reconciliation_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o degree_n of_o man_n gather_v out_o of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o christ_n himself_o interprete_v joh._n 17.9_o when_o he_o say_v father_n i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n and_o undoubted_o he_o will_v never_o save_v they_o he_o never_o pray_v for_o for_o who_o he_o exclude_v from_o his_o prayer_n they_o he_o never_o mean_v shall_v have_v benefit_n by_o his_o death_n nay_o he_o have_v be_v bind_v in_o duty_n to_o have_v pray_v for_o all_o if_o all_o have_v be_v elect_v to_o salvation_n now_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o man_n be_v damn_v the_o answer_n be_v easy_a it_o be_v for_o their_o sin_n howbeit_o it_o be_v purpose_v in_o the_o lord_n uncontrollable_a decree_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v damn_v before_o they_o ever_o sin_v and_o be_v corrupt_a in_o themselves_o the_o lord_n harden_v they_o either_o by_o withdraw_v the_o mean_n or_o the_o power_n of_o the_o mean_n the_o first_o by_o ignorance_n the_o second_o by_o deny_v they_o understand_v heart_n so_o as_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v why_o the_o lord_n harden_v any_o it_o be_v because_o he_o find_v he_o corrupt_v in_o adam_n if_o why_o he_o damn_v any_o it_o be_v because_o he_o find_v he_o a_o sinner_n in_o himself_o who_o he_o call_v he_o justifi_v that_o be_v do_v absolute_o pardon_v he_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o absolute_o impute_v unto_o he_o all_o his_o son_n righteousness_n that_o as_o christ_n for_o we_o be_v make_v sin_n so_o we_o in_o christ_n may_v be_v make_v righteous_a so_o as_o justification_n be_v the_o translation_n and_o remove_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o christ_n and_o the_o translation_n and_o remove_n of_o his_o righteousness_n to_o us._n to_o our_o sin_n he_o oppose_v his_o obedience_n to_o the_o punishment_n of_o our_o sin_n he_o oppose_v his_o satisfaction_n otherwise_o he_o have_v not_o full_o acquit_v we_o by_o fulfil_v the_o law_n unless_o he_o have_v satisfy_v his_o father_n wrath_n for_o our_o breach_n of_o the_o law_n in_o our_o corrupt_a birth_n for_o if_o a_o man_n can_v now_o fulfil_v all_o the_o law_n of_o god_n yet_o shall_v he_o not_o be_v save_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v corrupt_a and_o can_v not_o possible_o satisfy_v for_o that_o be_v pass_v and_o in_o perform_v the_o law_n afterward_o he_o shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o his_o duty_n but_o this_o be_v our_o comfort_n that_o the_o lord_n see_v our_o weakness_n have_v in_o his_o love_n pass_v by_o it_o and_o see_v our_o thought_n to_o be_v always_o evil_a take_v no_o account_n nor_o reckon_n of_o we_o but_o be_v semble_v the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n the_o lord_n reckon_v with_o he_o and_o strike_v off_o our_o debt_n in_o set_v they_o on_o his_o score_n who_o have_v pay_v the_o lord_n his_o full_a due_n even_o to_o the_o utmost_a farthing_n be_v in_o his_o birth_n clean_o in_o his_o life_n holy_a and_o in_o his_o death_n obedient_a who_o he_o justifi_v he_o glorifi_v in_o this_o life_n the_o lord_n do_v only_o call_v we_o and_o justify_v we_o so_o as_o no_o man_n need_v say_v as_o rom._n 10.7_o who_o shall_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n for_o that_o be_v to_o bring_v christ_n from_o above_o or_o who_o shall_v descend_v into_o the_o deep_a for_o that_o be_v to_o raise_v christ_n from_o the_o dead_a for_o so_o much_o virtue_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v needful_a for_o we_o we_o taste_v of_o here_o but_o our_o glorify_v be_v reserve_v and_o follow_v in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v have_v it_o here_o only_o in_o spe_fw-mi and_o not_o in_o re_fw-mi in_o hope_n but_o not_o in_o hand_n this_o glorify_v here_o speak_v of_o be_v mean_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o last_o day_n of_o our_o separation_n when_o the_o world_n shut_v her_o door_n upon_o we_o but_o of_o that_o glory_n we_o shall_v receive_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n which_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a by_o that_o go_v before_o vers_n 21._o namely_o that_o we_o wait_v for_o the_o restore_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o for_o the_o freedom_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o corruption_n howbeit_o in_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o separation_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v first_o 4●_n reu._n 2d_o 4●_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o fear_n and_o tear_n and_o shall_v have_v sin_n abolish_v second_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o our_o lord_n rest_n but_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o last_o day_n be_v far_o great_a and_o rest_v in_o three_o thing_n first_o in_o the_o resurrection_n and_o a_o wake_n of_o the_o body_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o shall_v not_o live_v by_o the_o soul_n only_o nor_o be_v maintain_v by_o outward_a and_o external_a instrument_n of_o bread_n &_o such_o like_a but_o it_o shall_v live_v as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n live_v and_o be_v glorious_a like_o the_o sun_n which_o shall_v then_o exceed_v itself_o in_o glory_n 3.13_o isay_n 65.17_o 2._o pet._n 3.13_o second_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n and_o in_o this_o new_a heaven_n shall_v dwell_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o shall_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o first_o majesty_n three_o which_o be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o we_o shall_v then_o have_v
to_o enter_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o heavenly_a place_n that_o as_o exod._n 39.7_o aron_n have_v precious_a stone_n in_o which_o the_o name_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n be_v write_v six_o in_o every_o stone_n and_o twelne_v in_o his_o breast_n in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o tribe_n that_o he_o may_v remember_v they_o to_o god_n in_o his_o prayer_n so_o christ_n bear_v in_o his_o breast_n ourselves_o as_o precious_a stone_n be_v thereby_o put_v in_o mind_n to_o remember_v we_o to_o his_o father_n &_o though_o our_o father_n have_v the_o veil_n before_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o holy_a yet_o we_o through_o the_o veil_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n heb._n 10.20_o be_v permit_v to_o come_v bold_o to_o the_o face_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o holy_a god_n the_o second_o benefit_n be_v that_o all_o our_o prayer_n be_v sanctify_v and_o do_v ascend_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n through_o his_o petition_n that_o be_v through_o his_o appear_v before_o his_o father_n they_o shall_v be_v hear_v of_o his_o father_n hereupon_o paul_n faith_n rom._n 5.2_o by_o he_o we_o have_v access_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n to_o offer_v up_o the_o sweet_a sacrifice_n of_o ourselves_o by_o christ_n who_o have_v make_v the_o way_n for_o we_o let_v we_o therefore_o approach_v unto_o he_o with_o confidence_n and_o this_o be_v that_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o reu._n 8.3_o the_o saint_n pour_v forth_o their_o incense_n that_o be_v their_o prayer_n which_o be_v give_v to_o christ_n have_v a_o golden_a censor_n that_o he_o shall_v put_v a_o new_a incense_n upon_o they_o upon_o the_o golden_a altar_n which_o be_v himself_o that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o gracious_a savour_n and_o a_o sweet_a smell_n in_o the_o nostril_n of_o his_o father_n the_o three_o benefit_n of_o this_o his_o intercession_n be_v that_o which_o we_o shall_v never_o full_o feel_v nor_o perceive_v till_o his_o last_o prayer_n be_v grant_v he_o make_v joh._n 17.21_o that_o we_o may_v be_v one_o in_o god_n and_o himself_o that_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o full_a contemplation_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n last_o observe_v that_o christ_n shall_v make_v this_o intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n till_o all_o his_o enemy_n be_v overcome_v and_o all_o his_o child_n array_v in_o stately_a and_o royal_a garment_n and_o then_o shall_v his_o prayer_n cease_v for_o why_o shall_v he_o pray_v any_o long_o when_o his_o prayer_n be_v grant_v but_o by_o this_o we_o may_v see_v that_o salvation_n of_o soul_n be_v no_o such_o easy_a matter_n as_o the_o world_n imagine_v since_o it_o require_v this_o continual_a exercise_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o make_v request_n for_o we_o and_o if_o christ_n in_o love_n and_o compassion_n do_v it_o for_o we_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o do_v it_o for_o ourselves_o rom_n chap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 35_o 36_o 37._o verse_n 35_o who_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n shall_v tribulation_n or_o anguish_n or_o persecution_n or_o famine_n or_o nakedness_n or_o peril_n or_o sword_n verse_n 36_o as_o it_o be_v write_v for_o thy_o sake_n be_v we_o kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o we_o be_v count_v as_o sheep_n for_o the_o slaughter_n verse_n 37_o nevertheless_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n through_o he_o that_o love_v us._n the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o heavenly_a and_o christian_a security_n set_v down_o in_o the_o premise_n infer_v and_o bring_v in_o a_o most_o constant_a and_o comfortable_a resolution_n upon_o a_o stout_a magnanimity_n and_o spiritual_a courage_n by_o he_o conceive_v that_o be_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a any_o thing_n shall_v make_v we_o fall_v from_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n the_o reason_n be_v this_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n we_o can_v be_v remove_v from_o god_n favour_n but_o in_o these_o seven_o thing_n here_o reckon_v up_o tribulation_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v as_o needle_n in_o the_o flesh_n and_o wherein_o he_o comprehend_v all_o other_o these_o be_v the_o worst_a we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n therefore_o neither_o anguish_n famine_n etc._n etc._n can_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v however_o it_o be_v that_o man_n call_v not_o in_o question_n god_n love_n while_o they_o live_v in_o peace_n and_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o this_o life_n yet_o let_v we_o see_v how_o far_o adversity_n may_v throw_v and_o deject_v a_o man_n from_o this_o comfortable_a security_n that_o since_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o there_o shall_v sit_v till_o all_o his_o child_n be_v full_o glorify_v let_v we_o take_v the_o great_a extremity_n that_o can_v light_v upon_o the_o flesh_n tribulation_n that_o be_v any_o kind_n of_o outward_a trouble_n or_o anguish_n that_o be_v such_o inward_a perplexity_n or_o distress_n in_o soul_n that_o we_o be_v at_o our_o wit_n end_n like_o lot_n gen._n 19.8_o that_o must_v either_o give_v forth_o his_o daughter_n or_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o filthy_a sodomite_n or_o persecution_n by_o famine_n that_o be_v able_a to_o break_v a_o brazen_a wall_n it_o breed_v such_o rage_n in_o the_o bone_n or_o nakedness_n that_o be_v that_o we_o be_v so_o impoverish_v or_o beggar_a for_o the_o truth_n sake_n as_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o cover_v nor_o wherein_o to_o hide_v we_o or_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v most_o ghastly_a for_o the_o quick_a dispatch_n it_o will_v make_v all_o which_o join_v together_o may_v be_v reckon_v up_o for_o the_o continual_a portion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n both_o before_o christ_n and_o after_o 4.17_o 1._o pet._n 4.17_o for_o we_o need_v not_o suppose_v or_o imagine_v that_o this_o may_v come_v since_o it_o be_v so_o write_v psal_n 44.22_o that_o man_n do_v nothing_o but_o offer_v up_o the_o godly_a every_o day_n and_o the_o wicked_a make_v no_o more_o account_n of_o they_o but_o even_o as_o sheep_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o since_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o trial_n must_v be_v the_o great_a as_o saint_n peter_n speak_v because_o the_o spirit_n be_v great_a so_o as_o now_o judgement_n must_v begin_v at_o the_o house_n of_o god_n but_o what_o be_v the_o issue_n and_o end_n of_o all_o this_o we_o be_v in_o these_o extreme_a calamity_n more_o than_o conqueror_n so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o faint_v or_o fall_v and_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o shall_v either_o send_v we_o miraculous_a deliverance_n as_o he_o do_v to_o daniel_n da._n 6.22_o when_o he_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lion_n that_o he_o can_v not_o hurt_v he_o or_o else_o he_o will_v so_o qualify_v the_o misery_n that_o shall_v bear_v upon_o we_o with_o such_o extraordinary_a comfort_n that_o we_o will_v not_o exchange_v our_o adversity_n to_o ensnare_v our_o conscience_n with_o condition_n in_o serve_v of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o worst_a come_v that_o we_o be_v give_v up_o to_o death_n the_o heaven_n shall_v be_v open_a to_o receive_v we_o and_o the_o angel_n shall_v be_v ready_a to_o carry_v we_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o god_n 16.22_o luk._n 16.22_o and_o our_o enemy_n shall_v stand_v astonish_v to_o see_v the_o courage_n of_o our_o christian_n soul_n so_o willing_o embrace_v death_n in_o which_o be_v life_n and_o out_o of_o our_o blood_n shall_v rise_v a_o hundred_o professor_n more_o for_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n be_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o ourselves_o shall_v triumphant_o ascend_v to_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o almighty_a for_o the_o part_n of_o the_o text_n they_o be_v these_o first_o the_o apostle_n set_v down_o a_o demand_n by_o way_n of_o challenge_n and_o therefore_o impli_v a_o person_n in_o these_o word_n who_o shall_v etc._n etc._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o give_v the_o challenge_n to_o the_o stout_a champion_n what_o ever_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o devil_n that_o live_v in_o hell_n or_o his_o elder_a son_n or_o all_o his_o son_n that_o be_v on_o earth_n otherwise_o if_o the_o person_n that_o shall_v accept_v this_o challenge_n be_v not_o understand_v he_o shall_v more_o proper_o have_v say_v what_o shall_v separate_v we_o etc._n etc._n second_o he_o interpose_v and_o bring_v in_o a_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o 44._o psalm_n to_o show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o put_v it_o by_o supposition_n that_o these_o trouble_n may_v come_v or_o may_v not_o come_v but_o that_o of_o all_o other_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v not_o likely_a but_o sure_a to_o sustain_v they_o in_o the_o inevitable_a necessity_n of_o god_n decree_n as_o if_o we_o that_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o covenant_n be_v create_v for_o nothing_o else_o three_o
he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n now_o if_o any_o be_v so_o audacious_a and_o bold_a to_o ask_v why_o god_n be_v so_o sharp_a in_o smite_v his_o creature_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n answer_v first_o with_o s._n paul_n rom._n 9.20_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o dare_v plead_v with_o god_n and_o call_v he_o to_o a_o account_n for_o his_o do_n his_o secret_n be_v too_o high_a for_o thou_o and_o his_o way_n past_o find_v our_o second_o if_o the_o creature_n have_v not_o be_v punish_v with_o man_n and_o that_o he_o by_o his_o particular_a sin_n have_v not_o procure_v a_o general_a curse_n than_o can_v not_o man_n in_o his_o weakness_n have_v make_v any_o use_n of_o the_o creature_n in_o their_o innocence_n unless_o they_o have_v fall_v with_o he_o for_o they_o have_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o vanity_n to_o have_v be_v slay_v and_o devour_v of_o man_n if_o in_o themselves_o they_o have_v not_o be_v accurse_v three_o god_n do_v not_o punish_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o for_o we_o know_v the_o child_n be_v punish_v for_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o parent_n not_o for_o any_o fault_n commit_v in_o their_o person_n but_o for_o that_o the_o parent_n have_v so_o high_o transgress_v the_o prince_n law_n for_o by_o this_o he_o have_v forfeit_v to_o the_o king_n what_o shall_v have_v descend_v to_o his_o child_n and_o this_o we_o think_v no_o hard_a part_n in_o a_o earthly_a prince_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o the_o case_n of_o ahab_n who_o take_v the_o eschete_n of_o naboth_n vineyard_n by_o a_o false_a plot_a accusation_n of_o a_o suppose_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o the_o king_n 1._o king_n 21.13_o then_o must_v we_o needs_o think_v that_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n who_o can_v but_o give_v righteous_a judgement_n have_v not_o deal_v hardly_o in_o punish_v and_o subdue_a the_o creature_n to_o this_o subjection_n adam_n have_v in_o his_o creation_n the_o rule_n give_v unto_o he_o over_o they_o as_o a_o father_n have_v over_o his_o child_n howbeit_o the_o lord_n in_o this_o give_v no_o principal_a or_o set_a blow_n to_o they_o but_o only_o strike_v they_o as_o it_o be_v through_o the_o side_n of_o man_n that_o after_o that_o fall_n we_o may_v be_v punish_v even_o oft_o time_n in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o if_o any_o ask_v again_o why_o god_n shall_v thus_o proceed_v in_o make_v our_o wound_n the_o wide_a by_o punish_v we_o in_o his_o creature_n since_o before_o the_o curse_n pronounce_v on_o they_o gen._n 3.15_o the_o lord_n have_v pardon_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o the_o sin_n by_o the_o promise_a seed_n of_o the_o woman_n answer_n this_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o two_o respect_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o elect_a second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o reprobate_n for_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o elect_v they_o be_v not_o punishment_n for_o sin_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o woman_n feed_v have_v by_o virtue_n of_o god_n promise_v wash_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o it_o but_o because_o there_o be_v yet_o a_o remnant_n of_o corruption_n there_o be_v much_o filth_n john_n 13.10_o hang_v on_o our_o foot_n therefore_o they_o be_v as_o chastisement_n to_o increase_v the_o measure_n of_o our_o sanctification_n and_o the_o labour_n in_o purge_v and_o keep_v ourselves_o clean_a by_o repentance_n and_o a_o holy_a life_n but_o now_o to_o the_o reprobate_n they_o be_v token_n and_o forerunner_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o of_o the_o sword_n of_o vengeance_n which_o they_o shall_v feel_v hereafter_o among_o the_o damn_a so_o that_o when_o we_o see_v the_o heaven_n make_v brass_n above_o we_o and_o the_o earth_n iron_n beneath_o we_o the_o one_o withhold_v the_o rain_n the_o other_o not_o yield_v her_o fruit_n but_o suffer_v it_o to_o die_v in_o her_o womb_n this_o be_v to_o we_o but_o a_o chastisement_n for_o some_o passion_n unsubdued_a or_o for_o some_o sin_n unrepented_a of_o but_o it_o be_v a_o scourge_n and_o revenge_n upon_o the_o reprobate_n mingle_v his_o rejoice_v with_o repine_v and_o his_o store_n with_o grudge_v that_o the_o want_n of_o that_o he_o seek_v may_v be_v as_o a_o fret_a canker_n in_o his_o soul_n to_o fill_v up_o the_o great_a measure_n of_o his_o sin_n verify_v those_o speech_n of_o job_n chap._n 8.14_o his_o trust_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o house_n of_o the_o spider_n and_o chap._n 11.20_o his_o hope_n shall_v be_v sorrow_n of_o mind_n for_o as_o for_o they_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n he_o use_v four_o special_a remedy_n to_o make_v they_o fit_a for_o heaven_n first_o his_o spirit_n to_o guide_v they_o second_o his_o word_n to_o instruct_v they_o three_o his_o chastisement_n to_o reclaim_v they_o four_o death_n itself_o to_o end_v they_o and_o therefore_o when_o he_o correct_v we_o in_o his_o creature_n it_o be_v to_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v recover_v we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o sight_n of_o another_o beat_v before_o we_o make_v they_o unfruitful_a that_o we_o may_v remember_v the_o want_n of_o our_o own_o work_n muster_v oft_o time_n the_o cloud_n together_o as_o if_o rain_n shall_v fall_v yet_o stay_v it_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o air_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o hardness_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o of_o the_o dryness_n of_o our_o eye_n that_o do_v not_o weep_v sufficient_o for_o our_o own_o sin_n nor_o abundant_o for_o the_o sin_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o land_n it_o be_v as_o we_o read_v ezech._n 9.4_o a_o undoubted_a mark_n of_o election_n set_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n in_o the_o before_o head_n of_o his_o saint_n to_o mourn_v and_o cry_v for_o the_o corruption_n and_o cruelty_n that_o be_v in_o a_o city_n again_o we_o have_v former_o note_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n justice_n against_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v avoid_v it_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o be_v to_o observe_v his_o exceed_a rich_a mercy_n both_o to_o the_o elect_a and_o to_o the_o reprobate_n that_o hereby_o we_o may_v be_v provoke_v to_o follow_v he_o 〈◊〉_d to_o what_o strait_n soever_o he_o shall_v cast_v we_o his_o mercy_n to_o his_o choose_a 〈◊〉_d ●●eth_v in_o this_o that_o though_o he_o have_v lay_v such_o a_o curse_n upon_o his_o 〈◊〉_d nature_n whereas_o they_o may_v lay_v the_o curse_n on_o we_o as_o the_o cause_n and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o know_v their_o own_o strength_n will_v devour_v we_o the_o lord_n in_o ●ove_n to_o we_o and_o in_o power_n to_o they_o hide_v it_o from_o they_o yet_o do_v he_o force_v they_o to_o serve_v we_o the_o use_n of_o they_o all_o be_v sanctify_v and_o restore_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n and_o we_o be_v through_o he_o make_v owner_n and_o possessor_n of_o they_o for_o as_o adam_n after_o his_o fall_n be_v seclude_v from_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n be_v thereby_o exclude_v from_o all_o the_o mean_n that_o may_v maintain_v life_n so_o christ_n have_v by_o our_o union_n with_o he_o bring_v we_o again_o into_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n where_o that_o rree_n grow_v we_o be_v thereby_o endow_v and_o enrich_v with_o all_o the_o creature_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n these_o be_v for_o his_o sake_n waiter_n and_o artendants_n on_o we_o yea_o the_o very_a little_a one_o that_o be_v elect_v as_o christ_n say_v matth._n 18.10_o have_v their_o angel_n in_o heaven_n to_o defend_v they_o and_o as_o david_n faith_n psal_n 34.8_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n pitch_v round_o about_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o now_o his_o mercy_n to_o the_o reprobate_n be_v manifest_v in_o this_o that_o he_o by_o his_o especial_a hand_n and_o commandment_n do_v bind_v and_o restrain_v the_o creature_n from_o rebel_a against_o they_o for_o the_o heaven_n will_v fall_v upon_o the_o whoremonger_n if_o god_n by_o his_o power_n do_v not_o chain_v they_o up_o the_o sun_n that_o shine_v will_v scorch_v and_o burn_v the_o usurer_n if_o his_o force_n be_v not_o bridle_v by_o the_o finger_n of_o god_n the_o water_n from_o above_o will_v fall_v like_o a_o sea_n upon_o the_o blasphemer_n if_o they_o be_v not_o shut_v in_o by_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n yea_o all_o lewd_a profane_a and_o wicked_a person_n shall_v be_v melt_v by_o the_o heat_n stifle_v by_o the_o air_n swallow_v by_o the_o earth_n devour_v by_o the_o beast_n choke_v by_o their_o bread_n and_o every_o creature_n will_v be_v avenge_v on_o they_o for_o the_o subjection_n bring_v upon_o they_o if_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n do_v not_o restrain_v they_o for_o if_o they_o may_v have_v their_o own_o will_n they_o will_v sure_o do_v it_o who_o be_v it_o say_v god_n joh._n 38.8_o that_o have_v shut_v up_o the_o sea_n with_o door_n that_o her_o proud_a wave_n can_v pass_v oner_n but_o i_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n job._n 39.12_o